- Y Diweddaraf sydd Ar Gael (Diwygiedig)
- Pwynt Penodol mewn Amser (18/06/2012)
- Gwreiddiol (Fel y'i Deddfwyd)
Version Superseded: 18/09/2012
Point in time view as at 18/06/2012.
Senior Courts Act 1981 is up to date with all changes known to be in force on or before 29 December 2024. There are changes that may be brought into force at a future date. Changes that have been made appear in the content and are referenced with annotations.
Changes and effects yet to be applied by the editorial team are only applicable when viewing the latest version or prospective version of legislation. They are therefore not accessible when viewing legislation as at a specific point in time. To view the ‘Changes to Legislation’ information for this provision return to the latest version view using the options provided in the ‘What Version’ box above.
An Act to consolidate with amendments the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925 and other enactments relating to the [F2Senior Courts] in England and Wales and the administration of justice therein; to repeal certain obsolete or unnecessary enactments so relating; to amend Part VIII of the Mental Health Act 1959, the Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968, the Arbitration Act 1979 and the law relating to county courts; and for connected purposes.
[28th July 1981]
Extent Information
E1For extent see s. 153(4)(5)
Textual Amendments
F1Act: "The Supreme Court Act 1981 (c. 54) may be cited as the Senior Courts Act 1981" (1.10.2009) by virtue of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 1(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F2Act: words substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C1By Criminal Justice Act 1991 (c. 53 SIF 39:1), s. 101(1), Sch. 12 para.23; S.I. 1991/2208, art. 2(1), Sch.1 it is provided (14.10.1991) that in relation to any time before the commencement of s. 70 of that 1991 Act (which came into force on 1.10.1992 by S.I. 1992/333, art. 2(2), Sch. 2) references in any enactment amended by that 1991 Act, to youth courts shall be construed as references to juvenile courts.
Textual Amendments
F3Words in Pt. 1 heading substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Textual Amendments
F4Words in s. 1 cross-heading substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
(1)The [F5Senior Courts] of England and Wales shall consist of the Court of Appeal, the High Court of Justice and the Crown Court, each having such jurisdiction as is conferred on it by or under this or any other Act.
F6(2). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F5Words in s. 1 and side-note substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F6S 1(2) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 7(5), 148(1), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 5, 30(b)
(1)The Court of Appeal shall consist of ex-officio judges and [F7not more than 38 ordinary judges.]
(2)The following shall be ex-officio judges of the Court of Appeal—
(a)F8. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(b)any person who [F9was Lord Chancellor before 12 June 2003];
(c)any [F10judge of the Supreme Court] who at the date of his appointment was, or was qualified for appointment as, an ordinary judge of the Court of Appeal or held an office within paragraphs (d) to (g);
(d)the Lord Chief Justice;
(e)the Master of the Rolls;
[F11(f)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(g)the President of the Family Division;
(h)the Chancellor of the High Court;]
but a person within paragraph (b) or (c) shall not be required to sit and act as a judge of the Court of Appeal unless at the [F12request of the Lord Chief Justice] he consents to do so.
[F13(2A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his function under subsection (2) of making requests to persons within paragraphs (b) and (c) of that subsection.]
[F14(3)An ordinary judge of the Court of Appeal (including the vice-president, if any, of either division) shall be styled “Lord Justice of Appeal” or “Lady Justice of Appeal”.]
(4)Her Majesty may by Order in Council from time to time amend subsection (1) so as to increase or further increase the maximum number of ordinary judges of the Court of Appeal.
[F15(4A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the making of an Order under subsection (4).]
(5)No recommendation shall be made to Her Majesty in Council to make an Order under subsection (4) unless a draft of the Order has been laid before Parliament and approved by resolution of each House of Parliament.
(6)The Court of Appeal shall be taken to be duly constituted notwithstanding any vacancy in the office of F16. . . Lord Chief Justice, Master of the Rolls, [F17President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court].
Textual Amendments
F7Words in s. 2(1) substituted (10.7.2008) by The Maximum Number of Judges Order 2008 (S.I. 2008/1777), art. 2
F8S. 2(2)(a) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(2)(a), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(f), 30(b)
F9Words in s. 2(2)(b) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(2)(b); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(f)
F10Words in s. 2(2)(c) substituted (1.10.2009) by virtue of Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 145, 148, Sch. 17 para. 22(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(e)
F11S. 2(2)(f)-(h) substituted (1.10.2005) for s. 2(2)(f)(g) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(2)(c); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F12Words in s. 2(2) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(2)(d); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(f)
F13S. 2(2A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(f)
F14S. 2(3) substituted (26.1.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 63(1), 110; S.I. 2003/3345, art. 2(a)(ii)
F15S. 2(4A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(f)
F16Words in s. 2(6) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(5)(a), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(f), 30(b)
F17Words in s. 2(6) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 115(5)(b); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C2S. 2(1) amended by virtue of S.I. 1983/1705, art. 2, 1987/2059, art. 2 (maximum number of ordinary judges prescribed by s. 2(1) increased from 18 to 28)
S. 2(1) amended (11.3.1993) by S.I. 1993/605, art.2 (maximum number of ordinary judges prescribed by s. 2(1) increased to 29)
S. 2(1) amended (15.12.1994) by S.I. 1994/3217, art.3 (maximum number of ordinary judges prescribed by s. 2(1) increased to 32)
S. 2(1) amended (25.4.1996) by S.I. 1996/1142, art.2 (maximum number of ordinary judges prescribed by s. 2(1) increased to 35)
S. 2(1) amended (21.11.2002) by The Maximum Number of Judges Order (S.I. 2002/2837), {art.2} (maximum number of ordinary judges prescribed by s. 2(1) increased to 37)
C3Ss. 2(1), 4(1), 12(1)-(6) modified (9.11.1998) by 1998 c. 42, s. 18(4)(a) (with ss. 7(8), 22(5))
S. 2(1) modified (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 68(3)(c), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
(1)There shall be two divisions of the Court of Appeal, namely the criminal division and the civil division.
(2)The Lord Chief Justice shall be president of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal, and the Master of the Rolls shall be president of the civil division of that court.
(3)The [F18Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor] appoint one of the ordinary judges of the Court of Appeal as vice-president of both divisions of that court, or one of those judges as vice-president of the criminal division and another of them as vice-president of the civil division.
(4)When sitting in a court of either division of the Court of Appeal in which no ex-officio judge of the Court of Appeal is sitting, the vice-president (if any) of that division shall preside.
(5)Any number of courts of either division of the Court of Appeal may sit at the same time.
[F19(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).]
Textual Amendments
F18Words in s. 3(3) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 116(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(g)
F19S. 3(6) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 116(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(g)
(1)The High Court shall consist of—
(a)F20. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(b)the Lord Chief Justice;
[F21(ba)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)the President of the Family Division;
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court;]
[F22(dd)the Senior Presiding Judge]
[F23(ddd)the vice-president of the Queen’s Bench Division;] and
(e)not more than eighty puisne judges of that court.
(2)The puisne judges of the High Court shall be styled “Justices of the High Court”.
(3)All the judges of the High Court shall, except where this Act expressly provides otherwise, have in all respects equal power, authority and jurisdiction.
(4)Her Majesty may by Order in Council from time to time amend subsection (1) so as to increase or further increase the maximum number of puisne judges of the High Court.
[F24(4A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the making of an Order under subsection (4).]
(5)No recommendation shall be made to Her Majesty in Council to make an Order under subsection (4) unless a draft of the Order has been laid before Parliament and approved by resolution of each House of Parliament.
(6)The High Court shall be taken to be duly constituted notwithstanding any vacancy in the office of F25. . . Lord Chief Justice, [F26President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division, Chancellor of the High Court][F27or Senior Presiding Judge][F28and whether or not an appointment has been made to the office of vice-president of the Queen’s Bench Division.].
Textual Amendments
F20S. 4(1)(a) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 117(2)(a), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(h), 30(b)
F21S. 4(1)(ba)-(d) substituted (1.10.2005) for s. 4(1)(c)(d) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 117(2)(b); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F22S. 4(1)(dd) inserted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 72(6)(a)
F23S. 4(1)(ddd) inserted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 69(2)(a), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F24S. 4(4A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 117(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(h)
F25Words in s. 4(6) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 117(4)(a), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(h), 30(b)
F26Words in s. 4(6) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 117(4)(b); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F27Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 72(6)(b)
F28Words in s. 4(6) inserted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 69(2)(b), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C4Ss. 2(1), 4(1), 12(1)-(6) modified (9.11.1998) by 1998 c. 42, ss. 18(4)(a), 22(2) (with ss. 7(8), 22(5))
S. 4(1) modified (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, s. 68(3)(c), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
C5S. 4(1)(e) amended by S.I. 1987/2059, art. 3 (maximum number of puisne judges prescribed by s. 4(1)(e) increased from 80 to 85)
S. 4(1)(e) amended (11.5.1993) by S.I. 1993/1255, art. 2
S. 4(1)(e) amended (25.11.1999) by S.I. 1999/3138, art. 2
C6S. 4(1)(e) amended (21.3.2003) by The Maximum Number of Judges Order 2003 (S.I. 2003/775), art. 2
(1)There shall be three divisions of the High Court namely—
(a)the Chancery Division, consisting of [F29the Chancellor of the High Court, who shall be president thereof,] and such of the puisne judges as are for the time being attached thereto in accordance with this section;
(b)the Queen’s Bench Division, consisting of the Lord Chief Justice, [F30, the President of the Queen's Bench Division], [F31the vice-president of the Queen’s Bench Division] and such of the puisne judges as are for the time being so attached thereto; and
(c)the Family Division, consisting of the President of the Family Division and such of the puisne judges as are for the time being so attached thereto.
(2)The puisne judges of the High Court shall be attached to the various Divisions by direction [F32given by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor]; and any such judge may with his consent be transferred from one Division to another by direction [F32given by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor], but shall be so transferred only with the concurrence of the senior judge of the Division from which it is proposed to transfer him.
(3)Any judge attached to any Division may act as an additional judge of any other Division at the request of the [F33Lord Chief Justice made][F34 with the concurrence of both of the following—
(a)the senior judge of the Division to which the judge is attached;
(b)the senior judge of the Division of which the judge is to act as an additional judge.]
.
(4)Nothing in this section shall be taken to prevent a judge of any Division (whether nominated under section 6(2) or not) from sitting, whenever required, in a divisional court of another Division or for any judge of another Division.
(5)Without prejudice to the provisions of this Act relating to the distribution of business in the High Court, all jurisdiction vested in the High Court under this Act shall belong to all the Divisions alike.
[F35(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).]
Textual Amendments
F29Words in s. 5(1)(a) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 118(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(i)
F30Words in s. 5(1)(b) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 118(3); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F31Words in s. 5(1)(b) inserted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 69(3), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F32Words in s. 5(2) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 118(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(i)
F33Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(2), Sch. 17 para. 12
F34Words in s. 5(3) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 118(5); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(i)
F35S. 5(6) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 118(6); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(i)
(1)There shall be—
(a)as part of the Chancery Division, a Patents Court; and
(b)as parts of the Queen’s Bench Division, an Admiralty Court and a Commercial Court.
(2)The judges of the Patents Court, of the Admiralty Court and of the Commercial Court shall be such of the puisne judges of the High Court as the [F36Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor,] from time to time nominate to be judges of the Patents Court, Admiralty Judges and Commercial Judges respectively.
[F37(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (2).]
Textual Amendments
F36Words in s. 6(2) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 119(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(j)
F37S. 6(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 119(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(j)
(1)Her Majesty may from time to time, on a recommendation of [F38the Lord Chancellor and] the judges mentioned in subsection (2), by Order in Council direct that—
(a)any increase or reduction in the number of Divisions of the High Court; or
(b)the transfer of any of the courts mentioned in section 6(1) to a different Division,
be carried into effect in pursuance of the recommendation.
(2)Those judges are F39. . . the Lord Chief Justice, the Master of the Rolls, [F40the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court]
(3)An Order in Council under this section may include such incidental, supplementary or consequential provisions as appear to Her Majesty necessary or expedient, including amendments of provisions referring to particular Divisions contained in this Act or any other statutory provision.
(4)Any Order in Council under this section shall be subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
Textual Amendments
F38Words in s. 7(1) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 120(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(k)
F39Words in s. 7(2) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 120(3)(a), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(k), 30(b)
F40Words in s. 7(2) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 120(3)(b); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
(1)The jurisdiction of the Crown Court shall be exercisable by—
(a)any judge of the High Court; or
(b)any Circuit judge [F41, Recorder, qualifying judge advocate or District Judge (Magistrates' Courts)] ; or
(c)subject to and in accordance with the provisions of sections 74 and 75(2), a judge of the High Court, Circuit judge [F42 , Recorder or qualifying judge advocate ] sitting with not more than four justices of the peace,
and any such persons when exercising the jurisdiction of the Crown Court shall be judges of the Crown Court.
[F43(1A)The jurisdiction of the Crown Court exercisable by a qualifying judge advocate by virtue of subsection (1) is the jurisdiction of the Court in relation to any criminal cause or matter other than an appeal from a youth court.]
[F44(2)A justice of the peace is not disqualified from acting as a judge of the Crown Court merely because the proceedings are not at a place within the local justice area to which he is assigned or because the proceedings are not related to that area in any other way.]
(3)When the Crown Court sits in the City of London it shall be known as the Central Criminal Court; and the Lord Mayor of the City and any Alderman of the City shall be entitled to sit as judges of the Central Criminal Court with any judge of the High Court [F45, Circuit judge, Recorder, qualifying judge advocate or District Judge (Magistrates' Courts)] .
[F46(4)Subsection (1A) does not affect the jurisdiction of the Crown Court exercisable by a person who holds an office mentioned in subsection (1)(a) or (b) where that person is also a qualifying judge advocate.]
Textual Amendments
F41Words in s. 8(1)(b) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 1(2); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F42Words in s. 8(1)(c) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 1(3); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F43S. 8(1A) inserted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 1(4); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F44S. 8(2) substituted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1), 110, Sch. 8 para. 259(2); S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)
F45Words in s. 8(3) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 1(5); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F46S. 8(4) inserted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 1(6); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
(1)A person within any entry in column 1 of the following Table may [F48subject to the provision at the end of that Table] at any time, at the request of the appropriate authority, act—
(a)as a judge of a relevant court specified in the request; or
(b)if the request relates to a particular division of a relevant court so specified, as a judge of that court in that division.
1 | 2 |
---|---|
Judge or ex-judge | Where competent to act on request |
1. A judge of the Court of Appeal. | The High Court and the Crown Court. |
2. A person who has been a judge of the Court of Appeal. | The Court of Appeal, the High Court and the Crown Court. |
3. A puisne judge of the High Court. | The Court of Appeal. |
4. A person who has been a puisne judge of the High Court. | The Court of Appeal, the High Court and the Crown Court. |
5. A Circuit judge. | The High Court [F49and the Court of Appeal]. |
[F506. A Recorder] | [F50The High Court] |
[F51The entry in column 2 specifying the Court of Appeal in relation to a Circuit judge only authorises such a judge to act as a judge of a court in the criminal division of the Court of Appeal.]
[F52(1A)A person shall not act as a judge by virtue of subsection (1) after the day on which he attains the age of 75.]
(2)In subsection (1)—
[F53“the appropriate authority” means—
the Lord Chief Justice or a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) nominated by him to exercise his functions under this section, or
at any time when the Lord Chief Justice or the nominated judicial office holder is unable to make such a request himself, or there is a vacancy in the office of Lord Chief Justice, the Master of the Rolls;]
“relevant court”, in the case of a person within any entry in column 1 of the Table, means a court specified in relation to that entry in column 2 of the Table.
F54. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F55(2A)The power of the appropriate authority to make a request under subsection (1) is subject to subsections (2B) to (2D).
(2B)In the case of a request to a person within entry 1, 3, 5 or 6 in column 1 of the Table, the appropriate authority may make the request only after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(2C)In any other case the appropriate authority may make a request only with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor.
(2D)In the case of a request to a Circuit judge or Recorder to act as a judge of the High Court, the appropriate authority may make the request only with the concurrence of the Judicial Appointments Commission.]
(3)In the case of—
(a)a request under subsection (1) to a Lord Justice of Appeal to act in the High Court; or
(b)any request under that subsection to a puisne judge of the High Court or a Circuit judge,
it shall be the duty of the person to whom the request is made to comply with it.
(4)Without prejudice to section 24 of the M1Courts Act 1971 (temporary appointment of deputy Circuit judges and assistant Recorders), if it [F56appears to the Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor,]that it is expedient as a temporary measure to make an appointment under this subsection in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the High Court or the Crown Court, he may appoint a person qualified for appointment as a puisne judge of the High Court to be a deputy judge of the High Court during such period or on such occasions as the [F57Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, think fit]; and during the period or on the occasions for which a person is appointed as a deputy judge under this subsection, he may act as a puisne judge of the High Court.
[F58(4A)No appointment of a person as a deputy judge of the High Court shall be such as to extend beyond the day on which he attains the age of 70, but this subsection is subject to section 26(4) to (6) of the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 (Lord Chancellor’s power to authorise continuance in office up to the age of 75).]
(5)Every person while acting under this section shall, subject to [F59subsections (6) and (6A)], be treated for all purposes as, and accordingly may perform any of the functions of, a judge of the court in which he is acting.
(6)A person shall not by virtue of subsection (5)—
(a)be treated as a judge of the court in which he is acting for the purposes of section 98(2) or of any statutory provision relating to—
(i)the appointment, retirement, removal or disqualification of judges of that court;
(ii)the tenure of office and oaths to be taken by such judges; or
(iii)the remuneration, allowances or pensions of such judges; or
(b)[F60subject to section 27 of the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993], be treated as having been a judge of a court in which he has acted only under this section.
[F61(6A)A Circuit judge or Recorder shall not by virtue of subsection (5) exercise any of the powers conferred on a single judge by sections 31 [F62, 31B, 31C] and 44 of the M2Criminal Appeal Act 1968 (powers of single judge in connection with appeals to the Court of Appeal and appeals from the Court of Appeal to the [F63Supreme Court]).]
F64(7). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(8)Such remuneration and allowances as the Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service, determine may be paid out of money provided by Parliament—
(a)to any person who has been—
[F65(i)a judge of the Supreme Court; or]
(ii)a judge of the Court of Appeal; or
(iii)a judge of the High Court,
and is by virtue of subsection (1) acting as mentioned in that subsection;
(b)to any deputy judge of the High Court appointed under subsection (4).
[F66(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (4).]
Textual Amendments
F47Words in s. 9 sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by virtue of Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1)(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F48Words in s. 9(1) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(2)(a); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2.
F49Words in the Table in s. 9(1) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(2)(b); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2.
F50Entry added by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 58
F51Words in s. 9(1) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(2)(c); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2.
F52S. 9(1A) inserted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 5(1) (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F53S. 9(2): definition of "the appropriate authority" substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(2)(a); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(l)
F54Words in s. 9(2) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(2)(b), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(l), 30(b)
F55S. 9(2A)-(2D) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(l)
F56Words in s. 9(4) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(4)(a); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(l)
F57Words in s. 9(4) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(4)(b); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(l)
F58S. 9(4A) inserted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 5(2) (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F59Words in s. 9(5) substituted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(4); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2.
F60S. 9(6)(b) substituted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 5(3) (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F61S. 9(6A) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(5); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2.
F62Words in s. 9(6A) inserted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1), 110, Sch. 8 para. 260; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)
F63Words in s. 9(6A) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F65S. 9(8)(a)(i) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 145, 148, Sch. 17 para. 22(3); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(e)
F66S. 9(9) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 121(5); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(l)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C7S. 9 restricted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26(7)(c) (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
Marginal Citations
(1)Whenever the office of Lord Chief Justice, Master of the Rolls, [F68President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court] is vacant, Her Majesty may [F69, on the recommendation of the Lord Chancellor,] by letters patent appoint a qualified person to that office.
(2)Subject to the limits on numbers for the time being imposed by sections 2(1) and 4(1), Her Majesty may [F70, on the recommendation of the Lord Chancellor,] from time to time by letters patent appoint qualified persons as Lords Justices of Appeal or as puisne judges of the High Court.
(3)No person shall be qualified for appointment—
(a)as Lord Chief Justice, Master of the Rolls, [F71President of the Queen's Bench Division, President of the Family Division or Chancellor of the High Court], unless he is qualified for appointment as a Lord Justice of Appeal or is a judge of the Court of Appeal;
(b)as a Lord Justice of Appeal, [F72unless—
[F73he satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 7-year basis; or]
he is a judge of the High Court;]; or
(c)as a puisne judge of the High Court, [F74unless—
[F73he satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 7-year basis; or]
he is a Circuit judge who has held that office for at least 2 years.]
[F75(4)A person appointed—
(a)to any of the offices mentioned in subsection (1),
(b)as a Lord Justice of Appeal, or
(c)as a puisne judge of the High Court,
shall take the required oaths as soon as may be after accepting office.
(5)In the case of a person appointed to the office of Lord Chief Justice, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of all of the following—
(a)the Master of the Rolls;
(b)the President of the Queen's Bench Division;
(c)the President of the Family Division;
(d)the Chancellor of the High Court.
(6)Where subsection (5) applies but there is a vacancy in one or more (but not all) of the offices mentioned in that subsection, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of the holders of such of the offices as are not vacant.
(7)In the case of a person appointed other than to the office of Lord Chief Justice, the required oaths are to be taken in the presence of—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice, or
(b)a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) nominated by him for this purpose.
(8)In this section “required oaths” means—
(a)the oath of allegiance, and
(b)the judicial oath,
as set out in the Promissory Oaths Act 1868.]
Textual Amendments
F67Words in s. 10 sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by virtue of Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F68Words in s. 10(1) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 122(2)(a); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F69Words in s. 10(1) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 122(2)(b); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(m)
F70Words in s. 10(2) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 122(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(m)
F71Words in s. 10(3)(a) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 122(4); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F72Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 71(1)(a)
F73S. 10(3)(b)(i)(c)(i) substituted (21.7.2008) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 50(6), 148, Sch. 10 para. 13(2); S.I. 2008/1653, art. 2(d) (with arts. 3, 4)
F74Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 71(1)(b)
F75S. 10(4)-(8) substituted (3.4.2006) for s. 10(4) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 122(5); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(m)
(1)This section applies to the office of any judge of the [F76Senior Courts]F77. . . .
(2)A person appointed to an office to which this section applies shall vacate it on the day on which he attains the age of [F78seventy] years unless by virtue of this section he has ceased to hold it before then.
(3)A person appointed to an office to which this section applies shall hold that office during good behaviour, subject to a power of removal by Her Majesty on an address presented to Her by both Houses of Parliament.
[F79(3A)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the exercise of the power of removal under subsection (3).]
(4)A person holding an office within section 2(2)(d) to (g) shall vacate that office on becoming [F80a judge of the Supreme Court].
(5)A Lord Justice of Appeal shall vacate that office on becoming an ex-officio judge of the Court of Appeal.
(6)A puisne judge of the High Court shall vacate that office on becoming a judge of the Court of Appeal.
(7)A person who holds an office to which this section applies may at any time resign it by giving the Lord Chancellor notice in writing to that effect.
(8)The Lord Chancellor, if satisfied by means of a medical certificate that a person holding an office to which this section applies—
(a)is disabled by permanent infirmity from the performance of the duties of his office; and
(b)is for the time being incapacitated from resigning his office,
may, subject to subsection (9), by instrument under his hand declare that person’s office to have been vacated; and the instrument shall have the like effect for all purposes as if that person had on the date of the instrument resigned his office.
(9)A declaration under subsection (8) with respect to a person shall be of no effect unless it is made—
(a)in the case of any of the Lord Chief Justice, the Master of the Rolls, [F81the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court,] with the concurrence of two others of them;
(b)in the case of a Lord Justice of Appeal, with the concurrence of the Master of the Rolls;
(c)in the case of a puisne judge of any Division of the High Court, with the concurrence of the senior judge of that Division.
(10). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F82
Textual Amendments
F76Words in s. 11 and sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F77Words in s. 11(1) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 123(3), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11(n), 30(b)
F78Words in s. 11(2) substituted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para.4 (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F79S. 11(3A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 123(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11
F80Words in s. 11(4) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 145, 148, Sch. 17 para. 22(4); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(e)
F81Words in s. 11(9) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 145, Sch. 4 para. 123(4); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
(1)Subject to subsections (2) and (3), there shall be paid to judges of the [F83Senior Courts]F84. . . such salaries as may be determined by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service.
(2)Until otherwise determined under this section, there shall be paid to the judges mentioned in subsection (1) the same salaries as at the commencement of this Act.
(3)Any salary payable under this section may be increased, but not reduced, by a determination or further determination under this section.
(4). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F85
(5)Salaries payable under this section shall be charged on and paid out of the Consolidated Fund.
(6)There shall be paid out of money provided by Parliament to any judge of the Court of Appeal or of the High Court, in addition to his salary, such allowances as may be determined by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service.
(7)Pensions shall be payable to or in respect of the judges mentioned in subsection (1) in accordance with section 2 of the Judicial Pensions Act 1981 [F86or, in the case of a judge who is a person to whom Part I of the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 applies, in accordance with that Act].
Textual Amendments
F83Words in s. 12 and sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F84Words in s. 12(1) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 124, Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1604, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 11, 30
F85S. 12(4) repealed by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37, 76:1), ss. 84(f), 125(7), Sch. 20 (subject to a saving in s. 125(6), Sch. 19 para. 10(5))
F86Words in s. 12(7) inserted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 31(3), Sch. 8 para. 15(1); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C8Ss. 2(1), 4(1), 12(1)-(6) modified (9.11.1998) by 1998 c. 42, ss. 18(4)(a), 22(2) (with ss. 7(8), 22(5))
S. 12(1)-(6) modified (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 68(3)(a), 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2)).
(1)When sitting in the Court of Appeal—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice and the Master of the Rolls shall rank in that order; and
(b)[F88judges of the Supreme Court] and persons who have been Lord Chancellor shall rank next after the Master of the Rolls and, among themselves, according to the priority of the dates on which they respectively became [F88judges of the Supreme Court] or Lord Chancellor, as the case may be.
[F89(2)Subject to subsection (1)(b), the President of the Queen's Bench Division shall rank next after the Master of the Rolls.
(2A)The President of the Family Division shall rank next after the President of the Queen's Bench Division.
(3)The Chancellor of the High Court shall rank next after the President of the Family Division.]
(4)The vice-president or vice-presidents of the divisions of the Court of Appeal shall rank next after the [F90Chancellor of the High Court]; and if there are two vice-presidents of those divisions, they shall rank, among themselves, according to the priority of the dates on which they respectively became vice-presidents.
(5)The Lords Justices of Appeal (other than the vice-president or vice-presidents of the divisions of the Court of Appeal) shall rank after the ex-officio judges of the Court of Appeal and, among themselves, according to the priority of the dates on which they respectively became judges of that court.
(6)The puisne judges of the High Court shall rank next after the judges of the Court of Appeal and, among themselves, according to the priority of the dates on which they respectively became judges of the High Court.
Textual Amendments
F87Words in s. 13 substituted (1.10.2009) by virtue of Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F88Words in s. 13(1)(b) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 145, 148, Sch. 17 para. 22(5); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(e)
F89S. 13(2)-(3) substituted (1.10.2005) for s. 13(2)(3) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 125(2); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F90Words in s. 13(4) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 125(3); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
(1)A judge of the [F92Senior Courts] or of the Crown Court shall not be incapable of acting as such in any proceedings by reason of being, as one of a class of ratepayers, taxpayers or persons of any other description, liable in common with others to pay, or contribute to, or benefit from, any rate or tax which may be increased, reduced or in any way affected by those proceedings.
(2)In this section “rate or tax” means any rate, tax, duty or liability, whether public, general or local, and includes—
(a)any fund formed from the proceeds of any such rate, tax, duty or liability; and
(b)any fund applicable for purposes the same as, or similar to, those for which the proceeds of any such rate, tax, duty or liability are or might be applied.
Textual Amendments
F91Words in s. 14 sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 54), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(3); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F92Words in s. 14 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
(1)The Court of Appeal shall be a superior court of record.
(2)Subject to the provisions of this Act, there shall be exercisable by the Court of Appeal—
(a)all such jurisdiction (whether civil or criminal) as is conferred on it by this or any other Act; and
(b)all such other jurisdiction (whether civil or criminal) as was exercisable by it immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(3)For all purposes of or incidental to—
(a)the hearing and determination of any appeal to the civil division of the Court of Appeal; and
(b)the amendment, execution and enforcement of any judgment or order made on such an appeal,
the Court of Appeal shall have all the authority and jurisdiction of the court or tribunal from which the appeal was brought.
(4)It is hereby declared that any provision in this or any other Act which authorises or requires the taking of any steps for the execution or enforcement of a judgment or order of the High Court applies in relation to a judgment or order of the civil division of the Court of Appeal as it applies in relation to a judgment or order of the High Court.
(1)Subject as otherwise provided by this or any other Act (and in particular to the provision in section 13(2)(a) of the M3Administration of Justice Act 1969 excluding appeals to the Court of Appeal in cases where leave to appeal from the High Court directly to the [F93Supreme Court] is granted under Part II of that Act), [F94or as provided by any order made by the Lord Chancellor under section 56(1) of the Access to Justice Act 1999,] the Court of Appeal shall have jurisdiction to hear and determine appeals from any judgment or order of the High Court.
(2)An appeal from a judgment or order of the High Court when acting as a prize court shall not be to the Court of Appeal, but shall be to Her Majesty in Council in accordance with the Prize Acts 1864 to 1944.
Textual Amendments
F93Words in s. 16(1) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(3); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F94Words in s. 16(1) inserted (2.5.2000) by S.I. 2000/1071, art. 7
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C9S. 16 extended (prosp.) by Building Act 1984 (c. 55, SIF 15), ss. 42(3)(b), 134(1)
C10S. 16 extended by Building Societies Act 1986 (c. 53, SIF 16), ss. 54(3)(a)(5), 84(6), 119(5)
C11S. 16 extended (1.12.1991) by Water Industry Act 1991 (c. 56, SIF 130), ss. 118(2), 137(2), 140, 223(2), Sch. 8 paras. 1, 3(2)
C12S. 16 excluded (2.10.2006) by 1999 c. 22, Sch. 3 para. 3B(6) (as inserted by Criminal Defence Service Act 2006 (c. 9), ss. 2, 5(2); S.I. 2006/2491, art. 2)
C13S. 16(1) excluded (22.11.2005) by The Access to Justice Act 1999 (Destination of Appeals) (Family Proceedings) Order 2005 (S.I. 2005/3276), art. 1(3)(b)(i)
Marginal Citations
(1)Where any cause or matter, or any issue in any cause or matter, has been tried in the High Court, any application for a new trial thereof, or to set aside a verdict, finding or judgment therein, shall be heard and determined by the Court of Appeal except where rules of court made in pursuance of subsection (2) provide otherwise.
(2)As regards cases where the trial was by a judge alone and no error of the court at the trial is alleged, or any prescribed class of such cases, rules of court may provide that any such application as is mentioned in subsection (1) shall be heard and determined by the High Court.
(3)Nothing in this section shall alter the practice in bankruptcy.
(1)No appeal shall lie to the Court of Appeal—
(a)except as provided by the M4Administration of Justice Act 1960, from any judgment of the High Court in any criminal cause or matter;
(b)from any order of the High Court or any other court or tribunal allowing an extension of time for appealing from a judgment or order;
(c)from any order, judgment or decision of the High Court or any other court or tribunal which, by virtue of any provision (however expressed) of this or any other Act, is final;
(d)from a decree absolute of divorce or nullity of marriage, by a party who, having had time and opportunity to appeal from the decree nisi on which that decree was founded, has not appealed from the decree nisi;
F95(e). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F95(f). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F96(fa)from a dissolution order, nullity order or presumption of death order under Chapter 2 of Part 2 of the Civil Partnership Act 2004 that has been made final, by a party who, having had time and opportunity to appeal from the conditional order on which that final order was founded, has not appealed from the conditional order;]
[F97(g)except as provided by Part I of the Arbitration Act 1996, from any decision of the High Court under that Part;]
F95(h). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F98(1A). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F98(1B). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F99(2). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F95S. 18(1)(e)(f)(h) repealed (1.10.1993) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41), ss. 7(2), 125(7), Sch. 20; S.I. 1993/2132, art. 3, Sch.
F96S. 18(1)(fa) inserted (5.12.2005) by Civil Partnership Act 2004 (c. 33), ss. 261(1), 263, Sch. 27 para. 68; S.I. 2005/3175, art. 2(2) (subject to art. 2(3)-(5))
F97S. 18(1)(g) substituted (31.1.1997) by 1996 c. 23, s. 107(1), Sch. 3 para. 37(2) (with s. 81(2)); S.I. 1996/3146, art. 3 (with Sch. 2 para. 1)
F98S. 18(1A)(1B) repealed (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 106, 108(3)(f), Sch. 15 Pt. III (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F99S. 18(2) repealed (1.10.1993) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41), s. 125(7), Sch. 20; S.I. 1993/2132, art. 3, Sch.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C14S. 18(1)(a) excluded (18.12.2003) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), ss. 274(4), 336
C15S. 18(1)(a) excluded (18.12.2003) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), ss. 276, 336, Sch. 22 para. 14(2)
Marginal Citations
(1)The High Court shall be a superior court of record.
(2)Subject to the provisions of this Act, there shall be exercisable by the High Court—
(a)all such jurisdiction (whether civil or criminal) as is conferred on it by this or any other Act; and
(b)all such other jurisdiction (whether civil or criminal) as was exercisable by it immediately before the commencement of this Act (including jurisdiction conferred on a judge of the High Court by any statutory provision).
(3)Any jurisdiction of the High Court shall be exercised only by a single judge of that court, except in so far as it is—
(a)by or by virtue of rules of court or any other statutory provision required to be exercised by a divisional court; or
(b)by rules of court made exercisable by a master, registrar or other officer of the court, or by any other person.
(4)The specific mention elsewhere in this Act of any jurisdiction covered by subsection (2) shall not derogate from the generality of that subsection.
(1)The Admiralty jurisdiction of the High Court shall be as follows, that is to say—
(a)jurisdiction to hear and determine any of the questions and claims mentioned in subsection (2);
(b)jurisdiction in relation to any of the proceedings mentioned in subsection (3);
(c)any other Admiralty jurisdiction which it had immediately before the commencement of this Act; and
(d)any jurisdiction connected with ships or aircraft which is vested in the High Court apart from this section and is for the time being by rules of court made or coming into force after the commencement of this Act assigned to the Queen’s Bench Division and directed by the rules to be exercised by the Admiralty Court.
(2)The questions and claims referred to in subsection (1)(a) are—
(a)any claim to the possession or ownership of a ship or to the ownership of any share therein;
(b)any question arising between the co-owners of a ship as to possession, employment or earnings of that ship;
(c)any claim in respect of a mortgage of or charge on a ship or any share therein;
(d)any claim for damage received by a ship;
(e)any claim for damage done by a ship;
(f)any claim for loss of life or personal injury sustained in consequence of any defect in a ship or in her apparel or equipment, or in consequence of the wrongful act, neglect or default of—
(i)the owners, charterers or persons in possession or control of a ship; or
(ii)the master or crew of a ship, or any other person for whose wrongful acts, neglects or defaults the owners, charterers or persons in possession or control of a ship are responsible,
being an act, neglect or default in the navigation or management of the ship, in the loading, carriage or discharge of goods on, in or from the ship, or in the embarkation, carriage or disembarkation of persons on, in or from the ship;
(g)any claim for loss of or damage to goods carried in a ship;
(h)any claim arising out of any agreement relating to the carriage of goods in a ship or to the use or hire of a ship;
[F100(j)any claim—
(i)under the Salvage Convention 1989;
(ii)under any contract for or in relation to salvage services; or
(iii)in the nature of salvage not falling within (i) or (ii) above;
or any corresponding claim in connection with an aircraft;]
(k)any claim in the nature of towage in respect of a ship or an aircraft;
(l)any claim in the nature of pilotage in respect of a ship or an aircraft;
(m)any claim in respect of goods or materials supplied to a ship for her operation or maintenance;
(n)any claim in respect of the construction, repair or equipment of a ship or in respect of dock charges or dues;
(o)any claim by a master or member of the crew of a ship for wages (including any sum allotted out of wages or adjudged by a superintendent to be due by way of wages);
(p)any claim by a master, shipper, charterer or agent in respect of disbursements made on account of a ship;
(q)any claim arising out of an act which is or is claimed to be a general average act;
(r)any claim arising out of bottomry;
(s)any claim for the forfeiture or condemnation of a ship or of goods which are being or have been carried, or have been attempted to be carried, in a ship, or for the restoration of a ship or any such goods after seizure, or for droits of Admiralty.
(3)The proceedings referred to in subsection (1)(b) are—
(a)any application to the High Court under the M5Merchant Shipping Acts 1894 to 1979 other than an application under [F101the Merchant Shipping Act 1995];
(b)any action to enforce a claim for damage, loss of life or personal injury arising out of—
(i)a collision between ships; or
(ii)the carrying out of or omission to carry out a manoeuvre in the case of one or more of two or more ships; or
(iii)non-compliance, on the part of one or more of two or more ships, with the collision regulations;
(c)any action by shipowners or other persons under the [F102Merchant Shipping Act 1995] for the limitation of the amount of their liability in connection with a ship or other property.
(4)The jurisdiction of the High Court under subsection (2)(b) includes power to settle any account outstanding and unsettled between the parties in relation to the ship, and to direct that the ship, or any share thereof, shall be sold, and to make such other order as the court thinks fit.
(5)Subsection (2)(e) extends to—
(a)any claim in respect of a liability incurred under the [F103Chapter III of Part VI of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995]; and
(b)any claim in respect of a liability falling on the [F104International Oil Pollution Compensation Fund, or on the International Oil Compensation Fund 1984, under Chapter IV of Part VI of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995,][F105or on the International Oil Pollution Compensation Supplementary Fund 2003,].
[F106(6)In subsection (2)(j)—
(a)the “Salvage Convention 1989” means the International Convention on Salvage, 1989 as it has effect under [F107section 224 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995];
(b)the reference to salvage services includes services rendered in saving life from a ship and the reference to any claim under any contract for or in relation to salvage services includes any claim arising out of such a contract whether or not arising during the provision of the services;
(c)the reference to a corresponding claim in connection with an aircraft is a reference to any claim corresponding to any claim mentioned in sub-paragraph (i) or (ii) of paragraph (j) which is available under section 87 of the Civil Aviation Act 1982.]
(7)The preceding provisions of this section apply—
(a)in relation to all ships or aircraft, whether British or not and whether registered or not and wherever the residence or domicile of their owners may be;
(b)in relation to all claims, wherever arising (including, in the case of cargo or wreck salvage, claims in respect of cargo or wreck found on land); and
(c)so far as they relate to mortgages and charges, to all mortgages or charges, whether registered or not and whether legal or equitable, including mortgages and charges created under foreign law:
Provided that nothing in this subsection shall be construed as extending the cases in which money or property is recoverable under any of the provisions of the [F108Merchant Shipping Act 1995].
Textual Amendments
F100S. 20(2)(j) substituted (1.1.1995) by virtue of 1994 c. 28, s. 1(6), Sch. 2 para. 6(2); S.I. 1994/2971, art. 2, Sch.
F101Words in s. 20(3)(a) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(a)(i) (with s. 312(1))
F102Words in s. 20(3)(c) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(a)(ii) (with s. 312(1))
F103Words in s. 20(5)(a) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(b)(i) (with s. 312(1))
F104Words in s. 20(5)(b) substituted (1.1.1996) by virtue of 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(b)(ii) (with s. 312(1))
F105Words after "1992" inserted (coming into force in accordance with with art. 1(2) of the amending S.I.) by virtue of The Merchant Shipping (Oil Pollution) (Supplementary Fund Protocol) Order 2006 (S.I. 2006/1265), art. 13
F106S. 20(6) substituted (1.1.1995) by virtue of 1994 c. 28, s. 1(6), Sch. 2 para. 6(3); S.I. 1994/2971, art. 2, Sch.
F107Words in s. 20(6)(a) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(c) (with s. 312(1))
F108Words in s. 20(7) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(2)(d) (with s. 312(1))
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C16S. 20 extended (Guernsey) (1.12.1993) (with modifications) by S.I. 1993/2664, art. 3, Sch.
Marginal Citations
(1)Subject to section 22, an action in personam may be brought in the High Court in all cases within the Admiralty jurisdiction of that court.
(2)In the case of any such claim as is mentioned in section 20(2)(a), (c) or (s) or any such question as is mentioned in section 20(2)(b), an action in rem may be brought in the High Court against the ship or property in connection with which the claim or question arises.
(3)In any case in which there is a maritime lien or other charge on any ship, aircraft or other property for the amount claimed, an action in rem may be brought in the High Court against that ship, aircraft or property.
(4)In the case of any such claim as is mentioned in section 20(2)(e) to (r), where—
(a)the claim arises in connection with a ship; and
(b)the person who would be liable on the claim in an action in personam (“the relevant person”) was, when the cause of action arose, the owner or charterer of, or in possession or in control of, the ship,
an action in rem may (whether or not the claim gives rise to a maritime lien on that ship) be brought in the High Court against—
(i)that ship, if at the time when the action is brought the relevant person is either the beneficial owner of that ship as respects all the shares in it or the charterer of it under a charter by demise; or
(ii)any other ship of which, at the time when the action is brought, the relevant person is the beneficial owner as respects all the shares in it.
(5)In the case of a claim in the nature of towage or pilotage in respect of an aircraft, an action in rem may be brought in the High Court against that aircraft if, at the time when the action is brought, it is beneficially owned by the person who would be liable on the claim in an action in personam.
(6)Where, in the exercise of its Admiralty jurisdiction, the High Court orders any ship, aircraft or other property to be sold, the court shall have jurisdiction to hear and determine any question arising as to the title to the proceeds of sale.
(7)In determining for the purposes of subsections (4) and (5) whether a person would be liable on a claim in an action in personam it shall be assumed that he has his habitual residence or a place of business within England or Wales.
(8)Where, as regards any such claim as is mentioned in section 20(2)(e) to (r), a ship has been served with a writ or arrested in an action in rem brought to enforce that claim, no other ship may be served with a writ or arrested in that or any other action in rem brought to enforce that claim; but this subsection does not prevent the issue, in respect of any one such claim, of a writ naming more than one ship or of two or more writs each naming a different ship.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C17S. 21 extended (Guernsey) (1.12.1993) (with modifications) by S.I. 1993/2664, art. 3,Sch.
(1)This section applies to any claim for damage, loss of life or personal injury arising out of—
(a)a collision between ships; or
(b)the carrying out of, or omission to carry out, a manoeuvre in the case of one or more of two or more ships; or
(c)non-compliance, on the part of one or more of two or more ships, with the collision regulations.
(2)The High Court shall not entertain any action in personam to enforce a claim to which this section applies unless—
(a)the defendant has his habitual residence or a place of business within England or Wales; or
(b)the cause of action arose within inland waters of England or Wales or within the limits of a port of England or Wales; or
(c)an action arising out of the same incident or series of incidents is proceeding in the court or has been heard and determined in the court.
In this subsection—
“inland waters” includes any part of the sea adjacent to the coast of the United Kingdom certified by the Secretary of State to be waters falling by international law to be treated as within the territorial sovereignty of Her Majesty apart from the operation of that law in relation to territorial waters;
“port” means any port, harbour, river, estuary, haven, dock, canal or other place so long as a person or body of persons is empowered by or under an Act to make charges in respect of ships entering it or using the facilities therein, and “limits of a port” means the limits thereof as fixed by or under the Act in question or, as the case may be, by the relevant charter or custom;
“charges” means any charges with the exception of light dues, local light dues and any other charges in respect of lighthouses, buoys or beacons and of charges in respect of pilotage.
(3)The High Court shall not entertain any action in personam to enforce a claim to which this section applies until any proceedings previously brought by the plaintiff in any court outside England and Wales against the same defendant in respect of the same incident or series of incidents have been discontinued or otherwise come to an end.
(4)Subsections (2) and (3) shall apply to counterclaims (except counterclaims in proceedings arising out of the same incident or series of incidents) as they apply to actions, the references to the plaintiff and the defendant being for this purpose read as references to the plaintiff on the counterclaim and the defendant to the counterclaim respectively.
(5)Subsections (2) and (3) shall not apply to any action or counterclaim if the defendant thereto submits or has agreed to submit to the jurisdiction of the court.
(6)Subject to the provisions of subsection (3), the High Court shall have jurisdiction to entertain an action in personam to enforce a claim to which this section applies whenever any of the conditions specified in subsection (2)(a) to (c) is satisfied, and the rules of court relating to the service of process outside the jurisdiction shall make such provision as may appear to the rule-making authority to be appropriate having regard to the provisions of this subsection.
(7)Nothing in this section shall prevent an action which is brought in accordance with the provisions of this section in the High Court being transferred, in accordance with the enactments in that behalf, to some other court.
(8)For the avoidance of doubt it is hereby declared that this section applies in relation to the jurisdiction of the High Court not being Admiralty jurisdiction, as well as in relation to its Admiralty jurisdiction.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C18S. 22 extended (Guernsey) (1.12.1993) (with modifications) by S.I. 1993/2664, art. 3,Sch.
The High Court shall not have jurisdiction to determine any claim or question certified by the Secretary of State to be a claim or question which, under the Rhine Navigation Convention, falls to be determined in accordance with the provisions of that Convention; and any proceedings to enforce such a claim which are commenced in the High Court shall be set aside.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C19S. 23 extended (Guernsey) (1.12.1993) (with modifications) by S.I. 1993/2664, art. 3,Sch.
(1)In sections 20 to 23 and this section, unless the context otherwise requires—
“collision regulations” means [F109safety regulations under section 85 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995];
“goods” includes baggage;
“master” has the same meaning as in the [F110Merchant Shipping Act 1995], and accordingly includes every person (except a pilot) having command or charge of a ship;
“
” means the Convention of the 7th October 1868 as revised by any subsequent Convention;“ship” includes any description of vessel used in navigation and (except in the definition of “port” in section 22(2) and in subsection (2)(c) of this section) includes, subject to section 2(3) of the M6Hovercraft Act 1968, a hovercraft;
“towage” and “pilotage”, in relation to an aircraft, mean towage and pilotage while the aircraft is water-borne.
(2)Nothing in sections 20 to 23 shall—
(a)be construed as limiting the jurisdiction of the High Court to refuse to entertain an action for wages by the master or a member of the crew of a ship, not being a British ship;
(b)affect the provisions of section [F111226 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995] (power of a receiver of wreck to detain a ship in respect of a salvage claim); or
(c)authorise proceedings in rem in respect of any claim against the Crown, or the arrest, detention or sale of any of Her Majesty’s ships or Her Majesty’s aircraft, or, subject to section 2(3) of the Hovercraft Act 1968, Her Majesty’s hovercraft, or of any cargo or other property belonging to the Crown.
(3)In this section—
“Her Majesty’s ships” and “Her Majesty’s aircraft” have the meanings given by section 38(2) of the M7Crown Proceedings Act 1947;
“Her Majesty’s hovercraft” means hovercraft belonging to the Crown in right of Her Majesty’s Government in the United Kingdom or Her Majesty’s Government in Northern Ireland.
Textual Amendments
F109Words in definition of “collision regulations” in s. 24(1) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(3)(a)(i) (with s. 312(1))
F110Words in s. 24(1) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(3)(a)(ii) (with s. 312(1))
F111Words in s. 24(2)(b) substituted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(3)(b) (with s. 312(1))
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C20S. 24 extended (Guernsey) (1.12.1993) (with modifications) by S.I. 1993/2664, art. 3, Sch.
Marginal Citations
(1)Subject to the provisions of Part V, the High Court shall, in accordance with section 19(2), have the following probate jurisdiction, that is to say all such jurisdiction in relation to probates and letters of administration as it had immediately before the commencement of this Act, and in particular all such contentious and non-contentious jurisdiction as it then had in relation to—
(a)testamentary causes or matters;
(b)the grant, amendment or revocation of probates and letters of administration; and
(c)the real and personal estate of deceased persons.
(2)Subject to the provisions of Part V, the High Court shall, in the exercise of its probate jurisdiction, perform all such duties with respect to the estates of deceased persons as fell to be performed by it immediately before the commencement of this Act.
The High Court shall, in accordance with section 19(2), have all such jurisdiction in relation to matrimonial causes and matters as was immediately before the commencement of the M8Matrimonial Causes Act 1857 vested in or exercisable by any ecclesiastical court or person in England or Wales in respect of—
(a)divorce a mensa et thoro (renamed judicial separation by that Act);
(b)nullity of marriage . . . F112; and
(c)any matrimonial cause or matter except marriage licences.
Textual Amendments
F112Words repealed by Family Law Act 1986 (c. 55, SIF 49:3), s. 68(1)(2), Sch. 1 para. 25, Sch. 2
Marginal Citations
The High Court shall, in accordance with section 19(2), have as a prize court—
(a)all such jurisdiction as is conferred on it by the Prize Acts 1864 to 1944 (in which references to the High Court of Admiralty are by virtue of paragraph 1 of Schedule 4 to this Act to be construed as references to the High Court); and
(b)all such other jurisdiction on the high seas and elsewhere as it had as a prize court immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(1)Subject to subsection (2), any order, judgment or other decision of the Crown Court may be questioned by any party to the proceedings, on the ground that it is wrong in law or is in excess of jurisdiction, by applying to the Crown Court to have a case stated by that court for the opinion of the High Court.
(2)Subsection (1) shall not apply to—
(a)a judgment or other decision of the Crown Court relating to trial on indictment; or
(b)any decision of that court under F113. . . F114. . . [F115F113. . . or the Local Government (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1982] which, by any provision of any of those Acts, is to be final.
(3)Subject to the provisions of this Act and to rules of court, the High Court shall, in accordance with section 19(2), have jurisdiction to hear and determine—
(a)any application, or any appeal (whether by way of case stated or otherwise), which it has power to hear and determine under or by virtue of this or any other Act; and
(b)all such other appeals as it had jurisdiction to hear and determine immediately before the commencement of this Act.
[F116(4)In subsection (2)(a) the reference to a decision of the Crown Court relating to trial on indictment does not include a decision relating to an order under section 17 of the Access to Justice Act 1999.]
Textual Amendments
F113Words in s. 28(2)(b) repealed (1.9.2007) by Gambling Act 2005 (c. 19), ss. 356, 358, Sch. 17; S.I. 2006/3272, art. 2(4) (with Sch. 4)
F114Words in s. 28(2)(b) repealed (24.11.2005) by Licensing Act 2003 (c. 17), ss. 199, 201(2), Sch. 7 (with ss. 2(3), 15(2), 195); S.I. 2005/3056, art. 2(2)
F115Words substituted by Local Government (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1982 (c. 30, SIF 81:1), s. 2, Sch. 3 para. 27(6)
F116S. 28(4) inserted (2.4.2001) by 1999 c. 22, s. 24, Sch. 4 para. 22 (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2)); S.I. 2001/916, art. 3(a)(ii) (with Sch. 2 para. 2)
(1)This section applies where a case is stated for the opinion of the High Court—
(a)by a magistrates’ court under section 111 of the M9Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980; or
(b)by the Crown Court under section 28(1) of this Act.
(2)The High Court may, if it thinks fit, cause the case to be sent back for amendment and, where it does so, the case shall be amended accordingly.
(3)The High Court shall hear and determine the question arising on the case (or the case as amended) and shall—
(a)reverse, affirm or amend the determination in respect of which the case has been stated; or
(b)remit the matter to the magistrates’ court, or the Crown Court, with the opinion of the High Court,
and may make such other order in relation to the matter (including as to costs) as it thinks fit.
(4)Except as provided by the M10Administration of Justice Act 1960 (right of appeal to [F118Supreme Court] in criminal cases), a decision of the High Court under this section is final.]
Textual Amendments
F117S. 28A substituted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 61, 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F118Words in s. 28A(4) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(4); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Marginal Citations
[F120(1)The orders of mandamus, prohibition and certiorari shall be known instead as mandatory, prohibiting and quashing orders respectively.
(1A)The High Court shall have jurisdiction to make mandatory, prohibiting and quashing orders in those classes of case in which, immediately before 1st May 2004, it had jurisdiction to make orders of mandamus, prohibition and certiorari respectively.]
(2)Every such order shall be final, subject to any right of appeal therefrom.
(3)In relation to the jurisdiction of the Crown Court, other than its jurisdiction in matters relating to trial on indictment, the High Court shall have all such jurisdiction to make [F121mandatory, prohibiting or quashing orders] as the High Court possesses in relation to the jurisdiction of an inferior court.
[F122(3A)The High Court shall have no jurisdiction to make mandatory, prohibiting or quashing orders in relation to the jurisdiction of the Court Martial in matters relating to—
(a)trial by the Court Martial for an offence; or
(b)appeals from the Service Civilian Court.]
(4)The power of the High Court under any enactment to require justices of the peace or a judge or officer of a county court to do any act relating to the duties of their respective offices, or to require a magistrates’ court to state a case for the opinion of the High Court, in any case where the High Court formerly had by virtue of any enactment jurisdiction to make a rule absolute, or an order, for any of those purposes, shall be exercisable by [F123mandatory order].
[F124(5)In any statutory provision—
(a)references to mandamus or to a writ or order of mandamus shall be read as references to a mandatory order;
(b)references to prohibition or to a writ or order of prohibition shall be read as references to a prohibiting order;
(c)references to certiorari or to a writ or order of certiorari shall be read as references to a quashing order; and
(d)references to the issue or award of a writ of mandamus, prohibition or certiorari shall be read as references to the making of the corresponding mandatory, prohibiting or quashing order.]
[F125(6)In subsection (3) the reference to the Crown Court’s jurisdiction in matters relating to trial on indictment does not include its jurisdiction relating to orders under section 17 of the Access to Justice Act 1999.]
Textual Amendments
F119S. 29 sidenote substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 3(e)
F120S. 29(1)(1A) substituted (1.5.2004) for s. 29(1) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 3(a)
F121Words in s. 29(3)(3A) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 3(b)
F122S. 29(3A) substituted (28.3.2009 for certain purposes and otherwise 31.10.2009) by Armed Forces Act 2006 (c. 52), ss. 378, 383, Sch. 16 para. 93; S.I. 2009/812, art. 3; S.I. 2009/1167, art. 4
F123Words in s. 29(4) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 3(c)
F124S. 29(5) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 3(d)
F125S. 29(6) inserted (2.4.2001) by 1999 c. 22, s. 24, Sch. 4 para. 23 (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2)); S.I. 2001/916, art. 3(a)(ii)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C21S. 29(3A) modified (31.10.2009) by The Armed Forces Act 2006 (Transitional Provisions etc) Order 2009 (S.I. 2009/1059), arts. 1(3)(b), 205, Sch. 1 para. 21
(1)Where a person not entitled to do so acts in an office to which this section applies, the High Court may—
(a)grant an injunction restraining him from so acting; and
(b)if the case so requires, declare the office to be vacant.
(2)This section applies to any substantive office of a public nature and permanent character which is held under the Crown or which has been created by any statutory provision or royal charter.
(1)An application to the High Court for one or more of the following forms of relief, namely—
[F126(a)a mandatory, prohibiting or quashing order;]
(b)a declaration or injunction under subsection (2); or
(c)an injunction under section 30 restraining a person not entitled to do so from acting in an office to which that section applies,
shall be made in accordance with rules of court by a procedure to be known as an application for judicial review.
(2)A declaration may be made or an injunction granted under this subsection in any case where an application for judicial review, seeking that relief, has been made and the High Court considers that, having regard to—
(a)the nature of the matters in respect of which relief may be granted by [F127mandatory, prohibiting or quashing orders];
(b)the nature of the persons and bodies against whom relief may be granted by such orders; and
(c)all the circumstances of the case,
it would be just and convenient for the declaration to be made or the injunction to be granted, as the case may be.
(3)No application for judicial review shall be made unless the leave of the High Court has been obtained in accordance with rules of court; and the court shall not grant leave to make such an application unless it considers that the applicant has a sufficient interest in the matter to which the application relates.
[F128(4)On an application for judicial review the High Court may award to the applicant damages, restitution or the recovery of a sum due if—
(a)the application includes a claim for such an award arising from any matter to which the application relates; and
(b)the court is satisfied that such an award would have been made if the claim had been made in an action begun by the applicant at the time of making the application.]
[F129(5)If, on an application for judicial review, the High Court quashes the decision to which the application relates, it may in addition—
(a)remit the matter to the court, tribunal or authority which made the decision, with a direction to reconsider the matter and reach a decision in accordance with the findings of the High Court, or
(b)substitute its own decision for the decision in question.
(5A)But the power conferred by subsection (5)(b) is exercisable only if—
(a)the decision in question was made by a court or tribunal,
(b)the decision is quashed on the ground that there has been an error of law, and
(c)without the error, there would have been only one decision which the court or tribunal could have reached.
(5B)Unless the High Court otherwise directs, a decision substituted by it under subsection (5)(b) has effect as if it were a decision of the relevant court or tribunal.]
(6)Where the High Court considers that there has been undue delay in making an application for judicial review, the court may refuse to grant—
(a)leave for the making of the application; or
(b)any relief sought on the application,
if it considers that the granting of the relief sought would be likely to cause substantial hardship to, or substantially prejudice the rights of, any person or would be detrimental to good administration.
(7)Subsection (6) is without prejudice to any enactment or rule of court which has the effect of limiting the time within which an application for judicial review may be made.
Textual Amendments
F126S. 31(1)(a) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 4(a)
F127Words in s. 31(2)(a) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 4(b)
F128S. 31(4) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 4(c)
F129S. 31(5)-(5B) substituted (6.4.2008) for s. 31(5) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 141, 148; S.I. 2008/749, art. 2
(1)This section applies where an application is made to the High Court—
(a)for judicial review, or
(b)for permission to apply for judicial review.
(2)If Conditions 1, 2, 3 and 4 are met, the High Court must by order transfer the application to the Upper Tribunal.
[F131(2A)If Conditions 1, 2, 3 and 5 are met, but Condition 4 is not, the High Court must by order transfer the application to the Upper Tribunal.]
(3)If Conditions 1, 2 and 4 are met, but Condition 3 is not, the High Court may by order transfer the application to the Upper Tribunal if it appears to the High Court to be just and convenient to do so.
(4)Condition 1 is that the application does not seek anything other than—
(a)relief under section 31(1)(a) and (b);
(b)permission to apply for relief under section 31(1)(a) and (b);
(c)an award under section 31(4);
(d)interest;
(e)costs.
(5)Condition 2 is that the application does not call into question anything done by the Crown Court.
(6)Condition 3 is that the application falls within a class specified under section 18(6) of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007.
(7)Condition 4 is that the application does not call into question any decision made under—
(a)the Immigration Acts,
(b)the British Nationality Act 1981 (c. 61),
(c)any instrument having effect under an enactment within paragraph (a) or (b), or
(d)any other provision of law for the time being in force which determines British citizenship, British overseas territories citizenship, the status of a British National (Overseas) or British Overseas citizenship.]
[F132(8)Condition 5 is that the application calls into question a decision of the Secretary of State not to treat submissions as an asylum claim or a human rights claim within the meaning of Part 5 of the Nationality, Immigration and Asylum Act 2002 wholly or partly on the basis that they are not significantly different from material that has previously been considered (whether or not it calls into question any other decision).]
Textual Amendments
F130S. 31A inserted (3.11.2008) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 19, 148; S.I. 2008/2696, art. 5(a) (with arts. 3, 4)
F131S. 31A(2A) inserted (8.8.2011) by Borders, Citizenship and Immigration Act 2009 (c. 11), ss. 53(1)(a), 58(4)(a); S.I. 2011/1741, art. 2
F132S. 31A(8) inserted (8.8.2011) by Borders, Citizenship and Immigration Act 2009 (c. 11), ss. 53(1)(b), 58(4)(a); S.I. 2011/1741, art. 2
(1)As regards proceedings pending in the High Court, provision may be made by rules of court for enabling the court, in such circumstances as may be prescribed, to make an order requiring a party to the proceedings to make an interim payment of such amount as may be specified in the order, with provision for the payment to be made to such other party to the proceedings as may be so specified or, if the order so provides, by paying it into court.
(2)Any rules of court which make provision in accordance with subsection (1) may include provision for enabling a party to any proceedings who, in pursuance of such an order, has made an interim payment to recover the whole or part of the amount of the payment in such circumstances, and from such other party to the proceedings, as may be determined in accordance with the rules.
(3)Any rules made by virtue of this section may include such incidental, supplementary and consequential provisions as the rule-making authority may consider necessary or expedient.
(4)Nothing in this section shall be construed as affecting the exercise of any power relating to costs, including any power to make rules of court relating to costs.
(5)In this section “interim payment”, in relation to a party to any proceedings, means a payment on account of any damages, debt or other sum (excluding any costs) which that party may be held liable to pay to or for the benefit of another party to the proceedings if a final judgment or order of the court in the proceedings is given or made in favour of that other party.
(1)This section applies to an action for damages for personal injuries in which there is proved or admitted to be a chance that at some definite or indefinite time in the future the injured person will, as a result of the act or omission which gave rise to the cause of action, develop some serious disease or suffer some serious deterioration in his physical or mental condition.
(2)Subject to subsection (4) below, as regards any action for damages to which this section applies in which a judgment is given in the High Court, provision may be made by rules of court for enabling the court, in such circumstances as may be prescribed, to award the injured person—
(a)damages assessed on the assumption that the injured person will not develop the disease or suffer the deterioration in his condition; and
(b)further damages at a future date if he develops the disease or suffers the deterioration.
(3)Any rules made by virtue of this section may include such incidental, supplementary and consequential provisions as the rule-making authority may consider necessary or expedient.
(4)Nothing in this section shall be construed—
(a)as affecting the exercise of any power relating to costs, including any power to make rules of court relating to costs; or
(b)as prejudicing any duty of the court under any enactment or rule of law to reduce or limit the total damages which would have been recoverable apart from any such duty.]
Textual Amendments
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C22S. 32A amended by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), ss. 6(3), 73(2)
(1)On the application of any person in accordance with rules of court, the High Court shall, in such circumstances as may be specified in the rules, have power to make an order providing for any one or more of the following matters, that is to say—
(a)the inspection, photographing, preservation, custody and detention of property which appears to the court to be property which may become the subject-matter of subsequent proceedings in the High Court, or as to which any question may arise in any such proceedings; and
(b)the taking of samples of any such property as is mentioned in paragraph (a), and the carrying out of any experiment on or with any such property.
F135(2)On the application, in accordance with rules of court, of a person who appears to the High Court to be likely to be a party to subsequent proceedings in that court F136. . . the High Court shall, in such circumstances as may be specified in the rules, have power to order a person who appears to the court to be likely to be a party to the proceedings and to be likely to have or to have had in his possession, custody or power any documents which are relevant to an issue arising or likely to arise out of that claim—
(a)to disclose whether those documents are in his possession, custody or power; and
(b)to produce such of those documents as are in his possession, custody or power to the applicant or, on such conditions as may be specified in the order—
(i)to the applicant’s legal advisers; or
(ii)to the applicant’s legal advisers and any medical or other professional adviser of the applicant; or
(iii)if the applicant has no legal adviser, to any medical or other professional adviser of the applicant.]
Textual Amendments
F134S. 33 repealed so far as it relates to county courts by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
F135Power to amend conferred on s. 33(2) (27.4.1997) by 1997 c. 12, s. 8(1); S.I.1997/841, art. 3(a)
F136Words in s. 33(2) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of S.I. 1998/2940, arts. 1, 5(a); S.I. 1998/3132
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C23S.33 extended by SI 1988/593, art. 4(2)
C24S.33 extended (temp. for a period of 12 months beginning with 22.3.90: SI 1990/675; and for a further period of 12 months beginning with 22.3.1991: SI 1991/549, 779) by Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act 1989 (c. 4, SIF 39:2), s. 13(8), Sch. 4 para. 9(6)
S. 33 extended (prosp.) by 2000 c. 11, ss. 23, 128, Sch. 4 para. 13(6)(b)
S. 33 extended (17.4.2001) by S.I. 2001/953, art. 4(2)
S. 33 extended (13.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3927, art. 12
F138(1). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(2)On the application, in accordance with rules of court, of a party to any proceedings [F139to which this section applies], the High Court shall, in such circumstances as may be specified in the rules, have power to order a person who is not a party to the proceedings and who appears to the court to be likely to have in his possession, custody or power any documents which are relevant to an issue arising out of the said claim—
(a)to disclose whether those documents are in his possession, custody or power; and
(b)to produce such of those documents as are in his possession, custody or power to the applicant or, on such conditions as may be specified in the order—
(i)to the applicant’s legal advisers; or
(ii)to the applicant’s legal advisers and any medical or other professional adviser of the applicant; or
(iii)if the applicant has no legal adviser, to any medical or other professional adviser of the applicant.
(3)On the application, in accordance with rules of court, of a party to any proceedings [to which this section applies], the High Court shall, in such circumstances as may be specified in the rules, have power to make an order providing for any one or more of the following matters, that is to say—
(a)the inspection, photographing, preservation, custody and detention of property which is not the property of, or in the possession of, any party to the proceedings but which is the subject-matter of the proceedings or as to which any question arises in the proceedings;
(b)the taking of samples of any such property as is mentioned in paragraph (a) and the carrying out of any experiment on or with any such property.
(4)The preceding provisions of this section are without prejudice to the exercise by the High Court of any power to make orders which is exercisable apart from those provisions.]
Textual Amendments
F137S. 34 repealed so far as it relates to county courts by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
F138S. 34(1) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of S.I. 1998/2940, arts. 1, 5(b)(i); S.I. 1998/3132
F139By S.I. 1998/2940, art. 5(b)(ii) it is provided that in s. 34 in each subsection (2) and (3) the words “to which this subsection applies” are to be omitted
(1)The High Court shall not make an order under section 33 or 34 if it considers that compliance with the order, if made, would be likely to be injurious to the public interest.
(2)Rules of court may make provision as to the circumstances in which an order under section 33 or 34 can be made; and any rules making such provision may include such incidental, supplementary and consequential provisions as the rule-making authority may consider necessary or expedient.
(3)Without prejudice to the generality of subsection (2), rules of court shall be made for the purpose of ensuring that the costs of and incidental to proceedings for an order under section 33(2) or 34 incurred by the person against whom the order is sought shall be awarded to that person unless the court otherwise directs.
(4)Sections 33(2) and 34 and this section bind the Crown; and section 33(1) binds the Crown so far as it relates to property as to which it appears to the court that it may become the subject-matter of subsequent proceedings involving a claim in respect of personal injuries to a person or in respect of a person’s death.
In this subsection references to the Crown do not include references to Her Majesty in Her private capacity or to Her Majesty in right of Her Duchy of Lancaster or to the Duke of Cornwall.
(5)In sections [F14132A,] 33 and 34 and this section—
“property” includes any land, chattel or other corporeal property of any description;
“personal injuries” includes any disease and any impairment of a person’s physical or mental condition.]
Textual Amendments
F140S. 35 repealed so far as it relates to county courts by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
F141 “32A,” inserted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), ss. 6(2), 73(2)
(1)Subject to rules of court, in proceedings (whenever instituted) before the High Court for the recovery of a debt or damages there may be included in any sum for which judgment is given simple interest, at such rate as the court thinks fit or as rules of court may provide, on all or any part of the debt or damages in respect of which judgment is given, or payment is made before judgment, for all or any part of the period between the date when the cause of action arose and—
(a)in the case of any sum paid before judgment, the date of the payment; and
(b)in the case of the sum for which judgment is given, the date of the judgment.
(2)In relation to a judgment given for damages for personal injuries or death which exceed £200 subsection (1) shall have effect—
(a)with the substitution of “shall be included” for “may be included”; and
(b)with the addition of “unless the court is satisfied that there are special reasons to the contrary” after “given”, where first occurring.
(3)Subject to rules of court, where—
(a)there are proceedings (whenever instituted) before the High Court for the recovery of a debt; and
(b)the defendant pays the whole debt to the plaintiff (otherwise than in pursuance of a judgment in the proceedings),
the defendant shall be liable to pay the plaintiff simple interest at such rate as the court thinks fit or as rules of court may provide on all or any part of the debt for all or any part of the period between the date when the cause of action arose and the date of the payment.
(4)Interest in respect of a debt shall not be awarded under this section for a period during which, for whatever reason, interest on the debt already runs.
(5)Without prejudice to the generality of section 84, rules of court may provide for a rate of interest by reference to the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 as that section has effect from time to time or by reference to a rate for which any other enactment provides.
(6)Interest under this section may be calculated at different rates in respect of different periods.
(7)In this section “plaintiff” means the person seeking the debt or damages and “defendant” means the person from whom the plaintiff seeks the debt or damages and “personal injuries” includes any disease and any impairment of a person’s physical or mental condition.
(8)Nothing in this section affects the damages recoverable for the dishonour of a bill of exchange.]
Textual Amendments
F142S. 35A inserted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 15(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
(1)If in any cause or matter in the High Court it appears to the court that it is proper to compel the personal attendance at any trial of a witness who may not be within the jurisdiction of the court, it shall be lawful for the court, if in the discretion of the court it seems fit so to do, to order that a writ of subpoena ad testificandum or writ of subpoena duces tecum shall issue in special form commanding the witness to attend the trial wherever he shall be within the United Kingdom; and the service of any such writ in any part of the United Kingdom shall be as valid and effectual for all purposes as if it had been served within the jurisdiction of the High Court.
(2)Every such writ shall have at its foot a statement to the effect that it is issued by the special order of the High Court, and no such writ shall issue without such a special order.
(3)If any person served with a writ issued under this section does not appear as required by the writ, the High Court, on proof to the satisfaction of the court of the service of the writ and of the default, may transmit a certificate of the default under the seal of the court or under the hand of a judge of the court—
(a)if the service was in Scotland, to the Court of Session at Edinburgh; or
(b)if the service was in Northern Ireland, to the High Court of Justice in Northern Ireland at Belfast;
and the court to which the certificate is sent shall thereupon proceed against and punish the person in default in like manner as if that person had neglected or refused to appear in obedience to process issued out of that court.
(4)No court shall in any case proceed against or punish any person for having made such default as aforesaid unless it is shown to the court that a reasonable and sufficient sum of money to defray
[F143(a)the expenses of coming and attending to give evidence and of returning from giving evidence; and
(b)any other reasonable expenses which he has asked to be defrayed in connection with his evidence,
was tendered to him at the time when the writ was served upon him.]
(5)Nothing in this section shall affect—
(a)the power of the High Court to issue a commission for the examination of witnesses out of the jurisdiction of the court in any case in which, notwithstanding this section, the court thinks fit to issue such a commission; or
(b)the admissibility at any trial of any evidence which, if this section had not been enacted, would have been admissible on the ground of a witness being outside the jurisdiction of the court.
(6)In this section references to attendance at a trial include references to attendance before an examiner or commissioner appointed by the High Court in any cause or matter in that court, including an examiner or commissioner appointed to take evidence outside the jurisdiction of the court.
Textual Amendments
F143Words in s. 36(4) substituted (1.4.1991) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(2), Sch. 17 para. 13; S.I.1991/608, art. 2, Sch.
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C25S. 36 extended by Medical Act 1983 (c. 54, SIF 83:1), s. 43, Sch. 4 para. 2(2)
C26S. 36 extended by Dentists Act 1984 (c. 24, SIF 83:1), ss. 33, 50(2), Sch. 3 para. 3
C27S. 36 extended by Administration of Justice Act 1985 (c. 61, SIF 98:1), s. 30, Sch. 4 para. 2(2)
C28S. 36 applied by Opticians Act 1989 (c. 44, SIF 83:1), s. 21(2)
S. 36 applied (19.6.1997) by 1997 c. 24, ss. 10(8), 24(2), Sch. 2 para. 1(c)
S. 36 applied by Medical Act 1983 (c. 54), Sch. 4 para. 2(2) (as inserted (coming into force in accordance with art. 1(2)(3) of the amending S.I.) by The Medical Act 1983 (Amendment) Order 2002 (S.I. 2002/3135), arts. 1(2)(3), 14 (with transitional provisions in art. 16(2), Sch. 2)
C29S. 36 applied (prosp.) by Health and Social Care Act 2008 (c. 14), ss. 106, 170
C30S. 36 applied (E.W.S.) (27.9.2010) by The Pharmacy Order 2010 (S.I. 2010/231), arts. 1(5), 62(3); S.I. 2010/1621, art. 2(1), Sch.
C31S. 36(1)–(4) modified by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20, SIF 85), s. 104(4), Sch. 5 para. 43(2)
(1)The High Court may by order (whether interlocutory or final) grant an injunction or appoint a receiver in all cases in which it appears to the court to be just and convenient to do so.
(2)Any such order may be made either unconditionally or on such terms and conditions as the court thinks just.
(3)The power of the High Court under subsection (1) to grant an interlocutory injunction restraining a party to any proceedings from removing from the jurisdiction of the High Court, or otherwise dealing with, assets located within that jurisdiction shall be exercisable in cases where that party is, as well as in cases where he is not, domiciled, resident or present within that jurisdiction.
(4)The power of the High Court to appoint a receiver by way of equitable execution shall operate in relation to all legal estates and interests in land; and that power—
(a)may be exercised in relation to an estate or interest in land whether or not a charge has been imposed on that land under section 1 of the M11Charging Orders Act 1979 for the purpose of enforcing the judgment, order or award in question; and
(b)shall be in addition to, and not in derogation of, any power of any court to appoint a receiver in proceedings for enforcing such a charge.
(5)Where an order under the said section 1 imposing a charge for the purpose of enforcing a judgment, order or award has been, or has effect as if, registered under section 6 of the M12Land Charges Act 1972, subsection (4) of the said section 6 (effect of non-registration of writs and orders registrable under that section) shall not apply to an order appointing a receiver made either—
(a)in proceedings for enforcing the charge; or
(b)by way of equitable execution of the judgment, order or award or, as the case may be, of so much of it as requires payment of moneys secured by the charge.
(1)In any action in the High Court for the forfeiture of a lease for non-payment of rent, the court shall have power to grant relief against forfeiture in a summary manner, and may do so subject to the same terms and conditions as to the payment of rent, costs or otherwise as could have been imposed by it in such an action immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(2)Where the lessee or a person deriving title under him is granted relief under this section, he shall hold the demised premises in accordance with the terms of the lease without the necessity for a new lease.
(1)Where the High Court has given or made a judgment or order directing a person to execute any conveyance, contract or other document, or to indorse any negotiable instrument, then, if that person—
(a)neglects or refuses to comply with the judgment or order; or
(b)cannot after reasonable inquiry be found,
the High Court may, on such terms and conditions, if any, as may be just, order that the conveyance, contract or other document shall be executed, or that the negotiable instrument shall be indorsed, by such person as the court may nominate for that purpose.
(2)A conveyance, contract, document or instrument executed or indorsed in pursuance of an order under this section shall operate, and be for all purposes available, as if it had been executed or indorsed by the person originally directed to execute or indorse it.
(1)Subject to any order for the time being in force under subsection (4), this section applies to [F144any deposit account, and any withdrawable share account, with a deposit-taker]
(2)In determining whether, for the purposes of the jurisdiction of the High Court to attach debts for the purpose of satisfying judgments or orders for the payment of money, a sum standing to the credit of a person in an account to which this section applies is a sum due or accruing to that person and, as such, attachable in accordance with rules of court, any condition mentioned in subsection (3) which applies to the account shall be disregarded.
(3)Those conditions are—
(a)any condition that notice is required before any money or share is withdrawn;
(b)any condition that a personal application must be made before any money or share is withdrawn;
(c)any condition that a deposit book or share-account book must be produced before any money or share is withdrawn; or
(d)any other prescribed condition.
(4)The Lord Chancellor may by order make such provision as he thinks fit, by way of amendment of this section or otherwise, for all or any of the following purposes, namely—
(a)including in, or excluding from, the accounts to which this section applies accounts of any description specified in the order;
(b)excluding from the accounts to which this section applies all accounts with any particular [F145deposit-taker] so specified or with any [F145deposit-taker] of a description so specified.
(5)Any order under subsection (4) shall be made by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
[F146(6)“Deposit-taker” means a person who may, in the course of his business, lawfully accept deposits in the United Kingdom.]
[F147(7)Subsection (6) must be read with—
(a)section 22 of the Financial Services and Markets Act 2000;
(b)any relevant order under that section; and
(c)Schedule 2 to that Act.]
Textual Amendments
F144Words substituted for words and paras. (a)(b) in s. 40(1) (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 290(2)
F145Words in s. 40(4)(b) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 290(3)
F146S. 40(6) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 290(4)
F147S. 40(7) inserted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 290(5)
[F149(1)Where an [F150interim third party debt order] made in the exercise of the jurisdiction mentioned in subsection (2) of the preceding section is served on [F151a deposit-taker, it] may, subject to the provisions of this section, deduct from the relevant debt or debts an amount not exceeding the prescribed sum towards [F152its administrative and clerical expenses] in complying with the order; and the right F153. . . to make a deduction under this subsection shall be exercisable as from the time the [F150interim third party debt order] is served on it.
(1A)In subsection (1) “the relevant debt or debts”, in relation to an [F150interim third party debt order] served on [F154a deposit-taker], means the amount, as at the time the order is served on [F155it], of the debt or debts of which the whole or a part is expressed to be attached by the order.
(1B) A deduction may be made under subsection (1) in a case where the amount referred to in subsection (1A) is insufficient to cover both the amount of the deduction and the amount of the judgment debt and costs in respect of which the attachment was made, notwithstanding that the benefit of the attachment to the creditor is reduced as a result of the deduction.]
(2)[F156An amount may not in pursuance of subsection (1)] be deducted or, as the case may be, retained in a case where, by virtue of [F157section 346 of the Insolvency Act M13 1986] or [F158section][F159183 of the Insolvency Act 1986] or otherwise, the creditor is not entitled to retain the benefit of the attachment.
(3)In this section—
[F160“deposit-taker” has the given by section 40(6);] and
“prescribed” means prescribed by an order made by the Lord Chancellor.
(4)An order under this section—
(a)may make different provision for different cases; . . . F161
(b)without prejudice to the generality of paragraph (a) of this subsection, may prescribe sums differing according to the amount due under the judgment or order to be satisfied.
[F162(c)may provide for this section not to apply to [F163deposit-takers] of any prescribed description.]
(5)Any such order shall be made by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.]
Textual Amendments
F149S. 40A(1)(1A)(1B) substituted for s. 40A(1) by Administration of Justice Act 1985 (c. 61, SIF 37), ss. 52(2), 69(5), Sch. 9 para. 11(2)
F150Words in s. 40A(1)(1A) substituted (25.3.2002) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Enactments) Order 2002 (S.I. 2002/439), art. 6
F151Words in s. 40A(1) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(2)(a)
F152Words in s. 40A(1) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(2)(b)
F153Words in s. 40A(1) repealed (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(2)(c)
F154Words in s. 40A(1A) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(3)(a)
F155Words in s. 40A(1A) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(3)(b)
F156Words substituted by Administration of Justice Act 1985 (c. 61, SIF 37), ss. 52(3) 69(5), Sch. 9 para. 11(2)
F157Words substituted by virtue of Insolvency Act 1985 (c. 65, SIF 66), s. 235(1) Sch. 8 para. 35 and Insolvency Act 1986 (c.45, SIF 66), s. 439(2), Sch. 11 para. 9, Sch. 14
F158Word substituted by Companies Consolidation (Consequential Provisions) Act 1985 (c. 9, SIF 27), ss. 21, 23, 30, 31(8), Sch. 2
F159Words substituted by virtue of Companies Consolidation (Consequential Provisions) Act 1985 (c. 9, SIF 27), ss. 21, 23, 30, 31(8), Sch. 2 and Insolvency Act 1986 (c. 45, SIF 66), s. 439(2), Sch. 14
F160Definition of
“deposit-taker”
in s. 40A(3) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(4)
F161Word repealed by Administration of Justice Act 1985 (c. 61, SIF 37), ss. 52(4), 67(2), 69(5), Sch. 8 Pt. II, Sch. 9 para. 11(2)
F162Words inserted by Administration of Justice Act 1985 (c. 61, SIF 37), ss. 52(4), 69(5), Sch. 9 para. 11(2)
F163Words in s. 40A(4)(c) substituted (1.12.2001) by S.I. 2001/3649, arts. 1, 291(5)
Marginal Citations
(1)Subject to the provisions of this section, no minor shall be made a ward of court except by virtue of an order to that effect made by the High Court.
(2)Where an application is made for such an order in respect of a minor, the minor shall become a ward of court on the making of the application, but shall cease to be a ward of court at the end of such period as may be prescribed unless within that period an order has been made in accordance with the application.
[F164(2A)Subsection (2) does not apply with respect to a child who is the subject of a care order (as defined by section 105 of the Children Act 1989).]
(3)The High Court may, either upon an application in that behalf or without such an application, order that any minor who is for the time being a ward of court shall cease to be a ward of court.
Textual Amendments
F164S. 41(2A) inserted (14.10.1991) by Children Act 1989 (c. 41, SIF 20), s. 108(5)(6), Sch. 13 para. 45(2), Sch. 14 para. 1(1); S.I. 1991/828, art. 3(2)
(1)If, on an application made by the Attorney General under this section, the High Court is satisfied that any person has habitually and persistently and without any reasonable ground—
(a)instituted vexatious [F165civil] proceedings, whether in the High Court or any inferior court, and whether against the same person or against different persons; or
(b)made vexatious applications in any [F165civil] proceedings, whether in the High Court or any inferior court, and whether instituted by him or another, [F166or
(c)instituted vexatious prosecutions (whether against the same person or different persons),]
the court may, after hearing that person or giving him an opportunity of being heard, [F167make a civil proceedings order, a criminal proceedings order or an all proceedings order.]
[F168(1A)In this section—
“civil proceedings order” means an order that—
(a)no civil proceedings shall without the leave of the High Court be instituted in any court by the person against whom the order is made;
(b)any civil proceedings instituted by him in any court before the making of the order shall not be continued by him without the leave of the High Court; and
(c)no application (other than one for leave under this section) shall be made by him, in any civil proceedings instituted in any court by any person, without the leave of the High Court;
“criminal proceedings order” means an order that—
(a)no information shall be laid before a justice of the peace by the person against whom the order is made without the leave of the High Court; and
(b)no application for leave to prefer a bill of indictment shall be made by him without the leave of the High Court; and
“all proceedings order” means an order which has the combined effect of the two other orders.]
(2)An order under subsection (1) may provide that it is to cease to have effect at the end of a specified period, but shall otherwise remain in force indefinitely.
(3)Leave for the institution or continuance of, or for the making of an application in, any [F169civil] proceedings by a person who is the subject of an order for the time being in force under subsection (1) shall not be given unless the High Court is satisfied that the proceedings or application are not an abuse of the process of the court in question and that there are reasonable grounds for the proceedings or application.
[F170(3A)Leave for the laying of an information or for an application for leave to prefer a bill of indictment by a person who is the subject of an order for the time being in force under subsection (1) shall not be given unless the High Court is satisfied that the institution of the prosecution is not an abuse of the criminal process and that there are reasonable grounds for the institution of the prosecution by the applicant.]
(4)No appeal shall lie from a decision of the High Court refusing leave [F171required by virtue of this section].
(5)A copy of any order made under subsection (1) shall be published in the London Gazette.
Textual Amendments
F165Word substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 24(2)(a)
F166S. 42(1)(c) and word “or” preceding it inserted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s.24(2)(b)
F167Words substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 24(2)(c)
F168S. 42(1A) inserted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 24(3)
F169Word substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 24(4)
F170S. 42(3A) inserted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39), s. 24(5)
F171Words substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 24(6)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C32S. 42 amended by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s.24(7)
(1)Where a person who has been sentenced for an offence—
(a)by a magistrates’ court; or
(b)by the Crown Court after being convicted of the offence by a magistrates’ court and committed to the Crown Court for sentence; or
(c)by the Crown Court on appeal against conviction or sentence,
applies to the High Court in accordance with section 31 for an [F173a quashing order] to remove the proceedings of the magistrates’ court or the Crown Court into the High Court, then, if the High Court determines that the magistrates’ court or the Crown Court had no power to pass the sentence, the High Court may, instead of quashing the conviction, amend it by substituting for the sentence passed any sentence which the magistrates’ court or, in a case within paragraph (b), the Crown Court had power to impose.
(2)Any sentence passed by the High Court by virtue of this section in substitution for the sentence passed in the proceedings of the magistrates’ court or the Crown Court shall, unless the High Court otherwise directs, begin to run from the time when it would have begun to run if passed in those proceedings; but in computing the term of the sentence, any time during which the offender was released on bail in pursuance of section 37(1)(d) of the M14Criminal Justice Act 1948 shall be disregarded.
(3)Subsections (1) and (2) shall, with the necessary modifications, apply in relation to any order of a magistrates’ court or the Crown Court which is made on, but does not form part of, the conviction of an offender as they apply in relation to a conviction and sentence.
Textual Amendments
F172Words in s. 43 sidenote substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 5(b)
F173Words in s. 43(1) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 5(a)
Marginal Citations
(1)Where the High Court quashes the committal of a person to prison or detention by a magistrates’ court or the Crown Court for—
(a)a default in paying a sum adjudged to be paid by a conviction; or
(b)want of sufficient distress to satisfy such a sum,
the High Court may deal with the person for the default or want of sufficient distress in any way in which the magistrates’ court or Crown Court would have power to deal with him if it were dealing with him at the time when the committal is quashed.
(2)If the High Court commits him to prison or detention, the period of imprisonment or detention shall, unless the High Court otherwise directs, be treated as having begun when the person was committed by the magistrates’ court or the Crown Court (except that any time during which he was released on bail shall not be counted as part of the period).]
Textual Amendments
F174S. 43ZA inserted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 62, 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
In any cause or matter proceeding in the High Court in connection with any contract incorporating an arbitration agreement which confers specific powers upon the arbitrator, the High Court may, if all parties to the agreement agree, exercise any such powers.]
Textual Amendments
F175S. 43A inserted (1. 4. 1991) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 5), s. 100; S.I. 1991/608, art. 2, Sch.
(1)Subject to the provisions of this Act, every judge of the High Court shall be—
(a)liable to perform any duty not incident to the administration of justice in any court of law which a judge of the High Court was, as the successor of any judge formerly subject to that duty, liable to perform immediately before the commencement of this Act by virtue of any statute, law or custom; and
(b)empowered to exercise any authority or power not so incident which a judge of the High Court was, as the successor of any judge formerly possessing that authority or power, empowered to exercise immediately before that commencement by virtue of any statute, law or custom.
(2)Any such duty, authority or power which immediately before commencement of this Act was imposed or conferred by any statute, the law or custom on F176. . . the Lord Chief Justice or the Master of the Rolls shall continue to be performed and exercised by them respectively.
Textual Amendments
F176Words in s. 44(2) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 126, Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p), 30(b)
(1)The Crown Court shall be a superior court of record.
(2)Subject to the provisions of this Act, there shall be exercisable by the Crown Court—
(a)all such appellate and other jurisdiction as is conferred on it by or under this or any other Act; and
(b)all such other jurisdiction as was exercisable by it immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(3)Without prejudice to subsection (2), the jurisdiction of the Crown Court shall include all such powers and duties as were exercisable or fell to be performed by it immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(4)Subject to section 8 of the M15Criminal Procedure (Attendance of Witnesses) Act 1965 (substitution in criminal cases of procedure in that Act for procedure by way of subpoena) and to any provision contained in or having effect under this Act, the Crown Court shall, in relation to the attendance and examination of witnesses, any contempt of court, the enforcement of its orders and all other matters incidental to its jurisdiction, have the like powers, rights, privileges and authority as the High Court.
(5)The specific mention elsewhere in this Act of any jurisdiction covered by subsections (2) and (3) shall not derogate from the generality of those subsections.
Marginal Citations
(1)All proceedings on indictment shall be brought before the Crown Court.
(2)The jurisdiction of the Crown Court with respect to proceedings on indictment shall include jurisdiction in proceedings on indictment for offences wherever committed, and in particular proceedings on indictment for offences within the jurisdiction of the Admiralty of England.
(1)Sections 280, 281 and 282 of the Merchant Shipping Act 1995 (offences on ships and abroad by British citizens and others) apply in relation to other offences under the law of England and Wales as they apply in relation to offences under that Act or instruments under that Act.]
Textual Amendments
F177S. 46A inserted (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(2), 316(2), Sch. 13 para. 59(4) (with s. 312(1))
Textual Amendments
F178S. 47 repealed (25.8.2000) by 2000 c. 6, ss. 165(4), 168(1), Sch. 12 Pt. I (with Sch. 11 paras. 1, 2)
(1)The Crown Court may, in the course of hearing any appeal, correct any error or mistake in the order or judgment incorporating the decision which is the subject of the appeal.
(2)On the termination of the hearing of an appeal the Crown Court—
(a)may confirm, reverse or vary [F179any part of the decision appealed against, including a determination not to impose a separate penalty in respect of an offence]; or
(b)may remit the matter with its opinion thereon to the authority whose decision is appealed against; or
(c)may make such other order in the matter as the court thinks just, and by such order exercise any power which the said authority might have exercised.
(3)Subsection (2) has effect subject to any enactment relating to any such appeal which expressly limits or restricts the powers of the court on the appeal.
(4)[F180Subject to section 11(6) of the Criminal Appeal Act 1995, if]the appeal is against a conviction or a sentence, the preceding provisions of this section shall be construed as including power to award any punishment, whether more or less severe than that awarded by the magistrates’ court whose decision is appealed against, if that is a punishment which that magistrates’ court might have awarded.
(5)This section applies whether or not the appeal is against the whole of the decision.
(6)In this section “sentence” includes any order made by a court when dealing with an offender, including—
(a)a hospital order under [F181Part III of the Mental Health Act 1983], with or without [F182a restriction order, and an interim hospital order under [F181that Act]]; and
(b)a recommendation for deportation made when dealing with an offender.
[F183(7)The fact that an appeal is pending against an interim hospital order under [F184the said Act of 1983] shall not affect the power of the magistrates’ court that made it to renew or terminate the order or to deal with the appellant on its termination; and where the Crown Court quashes such an order but does not pass any sentence or make any other order in its place the Court may direct the appellant to be kept in custody or released on bail pending his being dealt with by that magistrates’ court.
(8)Where the Crown Court makes an interim hospital order by virtue of subsection (2)—
(a)the power of renewing or terminating the order and of dealing with the appellant on its termination shall be exercisable by the magistrates’ court whose decision is appealed against and not by the Crown Court; and
(b)that magistrates’ court shall be treated for the purposes of [F185section 38(7) of the said Act of 1983] (absconding offenders) as the court that made the order.]
Textual Amendments
F179Words substituted by Criminal Justice Act 1988 (c. 33, SIF 39:1), ss. 123(6), 156, Sch. 8 para. 16
F180Words in s. 48(4) substituted (31.3.1997) by 1995 c. 35, s. 29(1), Sch. 2 para.14; S.I. 1997/402. art.3(d)
F181Words substituted by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20, SIF 85), s. 43, Sch. 4 para. 58(a)
F182Words substituted by Mental Health (Amendment) Act 1982 (c. 51, SIF 85), s. 65(1), Sch. 3 para. 61(a)
F184Words substituted by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20, SIF 85), s. 43, Sch. 4 para. 58(b)
F185Words substituted by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20, SIF 85), s. 43, Sch. 4 para. 58(c)
(1)Subject to the provisions of this or any other Act, every court exercising jurisdiction in England or Wales in any civil cause or matter shall continue to administer law and equity on the basis that, wherever there is any conflict or variance between the rules of equity and the rules of the common law with reference to the same matter, the rules of equity shall prevail.
(2)Every such court shall give the same effect as hitherto—
(a)to all equitable estates, titles, rights, reliefs, defences and counterclaims, and to all equitable duties and liabilities; and
(b)subject thereto, to all legal claims and demands and all estates, titles, rights, duties, obligations and liabilities existing by the common law or by any custom or created by any statute,
and, subject to the provisions of this or any other Act, shall so exercise its jurisdiction in every cause or matter before it as to secure that, as far as possible, all matters in dispute between the parties are completely and finally determined, and all multiplicity of legal proceedings with respect to any of those matters is avoided.
(3)Nothing in this Act shall affect the power of the Court of Appeal or the High Court to stay any proceedings before it, where it thinks fit to do so, either of its own motion or on the application of any person, whether or not a party to the proceedings.
Where the Court of Appeal or the High Court has jurisdiction to entertain an application for an injunction or specific performance, it may award damages in addition to, or in substitution for, an injunction or specific performance.
(1)Subject to the provisions of this or any other enactment and to rules of court, the costs of and incidental to all proceedings in—
(a)the civil division of the Court of Appeal;
(b)the High Court; and
(c)any county court,
shall be in the discretion of the court.
(2)Without prejudice to any general power to make rules of court, such rules may make provision for regulating matters relating to the costs of those proceedings including, in particular, prescribing scales of costs to be paid to legal or other representatives [F187or for securing that the amount awarded to a party in respect of the costs to be paid by him to such representatives is not limited to what would have been payable by him to them if he had not been awarded costs.].
(3)The court shall have full power to determine by whom and to what extent the costs are to be paid.
(4)In subsections (1) and (2) “proceedings” includes the administration of estates and trusts.
(5)Nothing in subsection (1) shall alter the practice in any criminal cause, or in bankruptcy.
(6)In any proceedings mentioned in susbsection (1), the court may disallow, or (as the case may be) order the legal or other representative concerned to meet, the whole of any wasted costs or such part of them as may be determined in accordance with rules of court.
(7)In subsection (6), “wasted costs” means any costs incurred by a party—
(a)as a result of any improper, unreasonable or negligent act or omission on the part of any legal or other representative or any employee of such a representative; or
(b)which, in the light of any such act or omission occurring after they were incurred, the court considers it is unreasonable to expect that party to pay.
(8)Where—
(a)a person has commenced proceedings in the High Court; but
(b)those proceedings should, in the opinion of the court, have been commenced in a county court in accordance with any provision made under section 1 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 or by or under any other enactment,
the person responsible for determining the amount which is to be awarded to that person by way of costs shall have regard to those circumstances.
(9)Where, in complying with subsection (8), the responsible person reduces the amount which would otherwise be awarded to the person in question—
(a)the amount of that reduction shall not exceed 25 per cent; and
(b)on any taxation of the costs payable by that person to his legal representative, regard shall be had to the amount of the reduction.
(10)The Lord Chancellor may by order amend subsection (9)(a) by substituting, for the percentage for the time being mentioned there, a different percentage.
(11)Any such order shall be made by statutory instrument and may make such transitional or incidental provision as the Lord Chancellor considers expedient.
(12)No such statutory instrument shall be made unless a draft of the instrument has been approved by both Houses of Parliament.
(13)In this section “legal or other representative”, in relation to a party to proceedings, means any person exercising a right of audience or right to conduct litigation on his behalf.]
Textual Amendments
F186S. 51 commencing “Subject to the provisions of this or any other enactment” substituted (1.10.1991) for s. 51 commencing “Subject to the provisions of this or any other Act” by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 4(1); S.I. 1991/1883, art. 2
F187Words in s. 51(2) inserted (2.6.2003) by 1999 c. 22, s. 31 (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2)); S.I. 2003/1241, art. 2
(1)[F188Rules of court] may authorise the Crown Court to award costs and may regulate any matters relating to costs of proceedings in that court, and in particular may make provision as to—
(a)any discretion to award costs;
(b)the taxation of costs, or the fixing of a sum instead of directing a taxation, and as to the officer of the court or other person by whom costs are to be taxed;
(c)a right of appeal from any decision on the taxation of costs, whether to a Taxing Master of the [F189Senior Courts] or to any other officer or authority;
(d)a right of appeal to the High Court, subject to any conditions specified in the rules, from any decision on an appeal brought by virtue of paragraph (c);
(e)the enforcement of an order for costs; and
(f)the charges or expenses or other disbursements which are to be treated as costs for the purposes of the rules.
(2)The costs to be dealt with by rules made in pursuance of this section may, where an appeal is brought to the Crown Court from the decision of a magistrates’ court, or from the decision of any other court or tribunal, include costs in the proceedings in that court or tribunal.
[F190(2A)Subsection (6) of section 51 applies in relation to any civil proceedings in the Crown Court as it applies in relation to any proceedings mentioned in subsection (1) of that section]
(3)Nothing in this section authorises the making of rules about the payment of costs out of central funds, whether under the [F191Part II of the Prosecution of Offences Act 1985] or otherwise, but rules made in pursuance of this section may make any such provision as [F192in relation to costs of proceedings in the Crown Court, is contained in section 18 of that Act or in regulations made under section 19 of that Act (awards of party and party costs in criminal proceedings)].
(4)Rules made in pursuance of this section may amend or repeal all or any of the provisions of any enactment about costs between party and party in criminal or other proceedings in the Crown Court, being an enactment passed before, or contained in, the [F193Part II of the Prosecution of Offences Act 1985].
(5)Rules made in pursuance of this section shall have effect subject to the provisions of section 41 of, and Schedule 9 to, the M16Administration of Justice Act 1970 (method of enforcing orders for costs).
Textual Amendments
F188Words in s. 52(1) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 12(a) (with art. 2(2))
F189Words in s. 52 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1)(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F190S. 52(2A) inserted (1.10.1991) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 4(2); S.I. 1991/1883, art. 2
F191Words substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 31(5), Sch. 1 para. 9
F192Words substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 31(5), Sch. 1 para. 9
F193Words substituted by Prosecution of Offences Act 1985 (c. 23, SIF 39:1), s. 31(5), Sch. 1 para. 10
Marginal Citations
(1)Rules of court may provide for the distribution of business in the Court of Appeal between the civil and criminal divisions, but subject to any such rules business shall be distributed in accordance with the following provisions of this section.
(2)The criminal division of the Court of Appeal shall exercise—
(a)all jurisdiction of the Court of Appeal under Parts I and II of the M17Criminal Appeal Act 1968;
(b)the jurisdiction of the Court of Appeal under section 13 of the M18Administration of Justice Act 1960 (appeals in cases of contempt of court) in relation to appeals from orders and decisions of the Crown Court;
(c)all other jurisdiction expressly conferred on that division by this or any other Act; and
(d)the jurisdiction to order the issue of writs of venire de novo.
(3)The civil division of the Court of Appeal shall exercise the whole of the jurisdiction of that court not exercisable by the criminal division.
(4)Where any class of proceedings in the Court of Appeal is by any statutory provision assigned to the criminal division of that court, rules of court may provide for any enactment relating to—
(a)appeals to the Court of Appeal under Part I of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968; or
(b)any matter connected with or arising out of such appeals,
to apply in relation to proceedings of that class or, as the case may be, to any corresponding matter connected with or arising out of such proceedings, as it applies in relation to such appeals or, as the case may be, to the relevant matter within paragraph (b), with or without prescribed modifications in either case.
(1)This section relates to the civil division of the Court of Appeal; and in this section “court”, except where the context otherwise requires, means a court of that division.
[F194(2)Subject as follows, a court shall be duly constituted for the purpose of exercising any of its jurisdiction if it consists of one or more judges.
(3)The Master of the Rolls may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, give (or vary or revoke) directions about the minimum number of judges of which a court must consist if it is to be duly constituted for the purpose of any description of proceedings.
(4)The Master of the Rolls, or any Lord Justice of Appeal designated by him, may (subject to any directions under subsection (3)) determine the number of judges of which a court is to consist for the purpose of any particular proceedings.
(4A)The Master of the Rolls may give directions as to what is to happen in any particular case where one or more members of a court which has partly heard proceedings are unable to continue.]
(5)Where—
(a)an appeal has been heard by a court consisting of an even number of judges; and
(b)the members of the court are equally divided,
the case shall, on the application of any part to the appeal, be re-argued before and determined by an uneven number of judges not less than three, before any appeal to the [F195Supreme Court].
F196(6). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F196(7). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(8)Subsections (1) and (2) of section 70 (assessors in the High Court shall apply in relation to causes and matters before the civil division of the Court of Appeal as they apply in relation to causes and matters before the High Court.
(9)Subsections (3) and (4) of section 70 (scientific advisers to assist the Patents Court in proceedings under the M19Patents Act 1949 and the M20Patents Act 1977) shall apply in relation to the civil division of the Court of Appeal and proceedings on appeal from any decision of the Patents Court in proceedings under those Acts as they apply in relation to the Patents Court and proceedings under those Acts.
F196(10). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F194S. 54(2)-(4A) substituted for s. 54(2)-(4) (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 59, 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F195Words in s. 54(5) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(5); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F196S. 54(6)(7)(10) repealed (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 106, 108(3)(f), Sch. 15 Pt. III (with Sch. 14 paras. 7(2), 36(9))
Marginal Citations
(1)This section relates to the criminal division of the Court of Appeal; and in this section “court” means a court of that division.
(2)[F197Subject to subsection (6),]a court shall be duly constituted for the purpose of exercising any of its jurisdiction if it consists of an uneven number of judges not less than three.
(3)Where—
(a)part of any proceedings before a court has been heard by an uneven number of judges greater than three; and
(b)one or more members of the court are unable to continue,
the court shall remain duly constituted for the purpose of those proceedings so long as the number of members (whether even or uneven) is not reduced to less than three.
(4)[F197Subject to subsection (6),]a court shall, if it consists of two judges, be duly constituted for every purpose except—
(a)determining an appeal against—
(i)conviction; or
(ii)a verdict of not guilty by reason of insanity; or
(iii)a finding F198... under section 4 of the M21Criminal Procedure (Insanity) Act 1964 (unfitness to plead) that a person is under a disability;
[F199(aa)reviewing sentencing under Part IV of the Criminal Justice Act 1988;]
(b)determining an application for leave to appeal to the [F200Supreme Court]; and
(c)refusing an application for leave to appeal to the criminal division against conviction or any such verdict or finding as is mentioned in paragraph (a)(ii) or (iii), other than an application which has been refused by a single judge.
(5)Where an appeal has been heard by a court consisting of an even number of judges and the members of the court are equally divided, the case shall be re-argued before and determined by an uneven number of judges not less than three.
[F201(6)A court shall not be duly constituted if it includes more than one Circuit judge acting as a judge of the court under section 9.]
Textual Amendments
F197Words in s. 55(2)(4) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(7)(a); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2
F198Words in s. 55(4)(a)(iii) repealed (31.3.2005) by Domestic Violence, Crime and Victims Act 2004 (c. 28), ss. 58(1)(2), 60, Sch. 10 para. 14, Sch. 11; S.I. 2005/579, art. 3(i)(v)
F199S. 55(4)(aa) added by Criminal Justice Act 1988 (c. 33, SIF 39:1), ss. 123(6), 170(1), Sch. 8 para. 16, Sch. 15 para. 80
F200Words in s. 55(4)(b) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(5); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F201S. 55(6) inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(7)(b); S.I. 1994/3258, art.2
Marginal Citations
(1)No judge shall sit as a member of the civil division of the Court of Appeal on the hearing of, or shall determine any application in proceedings incidental or preliminary to, an appeal from a judgment or order made in any case by himself or by any court of which he was a member.
(2)No judge shall sit as a member of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal on the hearing of, or shall determine any application in proceedings incidental or preliminary to, an appeal against—
(a)a conviction before himself or a court of which he was a member; or
(b)a sentence passed by himself or such a court.
F202. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F202S. 56A repealed (26.1.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 67, 109(3), Sch. 10; S.I. 2003/3345, art. 2(a)(v)(c)(iii)
(1)The appeals or classes of appeals suitable for allocation to a court of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal in which a Circuit judge is acting under section 9 shall be determined in accordance with directions given by or on behalf of the Lord Chief Justice [F204after consulting the Lord Chancellor].
(2)In subsection (1) “appeal” includes the hearing of, or any application in proceedings incidental or preliminary to, an appeal.]
Textual Amendments
F203S. 56B inserted (11.1.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 52(9); S.I. 1994/3258, art. 2
F204Words in s. 56B(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 5), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 127; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)Sittings of the Court of Appeal may be held, and any other business of the Court of Appeal may be conducted, at any place in England or Wales.
(2)Subject to rules of court—
(a)the places at which the Court of Appeal sits outside the Royal Courts of Justice; and
(b)the days and times at which the Court of Appeal sits at any place outside the Royal Courts of Justice,
shall be determined in accordance with directions given by the Lord Chancellor [F205after consulting the Lord Chief Justice].
(3)Rules of court may make provision for regulating the vacations to be observed by the Court of Appeal and in the offices of that court.
(4)Rules of court—
(a)may provide for securing such sittings of the civil division of the Court of Appeal during vacation as the Master of the Rolls may with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor determine;
(b)without prejudice to paragraph (a), shall provide for the transaction during vacation by judges of the Court of Appeal of all such business in the civil division of that court as may require to be immediately or promptly transacted; and
(c)shall provide for securing sittings of the criminal division of that court during vacation if necessary.
[F206(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F205Words in s. 57(2) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 128(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F206S. 57(5) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 128(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)Rules of court may provide that decisions of the Court of Appeal which—
(a)are taken by a single judge or any officer or member of staff of that court in proceedings incidental to any cause or matter pending before the civil division of that court; and
(b)do not involve the determination of an appeal or of an application for permission to appeal,
may be called into question in such manner as may be prescribed.
(2)No appeal shall lie to the [F208Supreme Court] from a decision which may be called into question pursuant to rules under subsection (1).]
Textual Amendments
F207S. 58 substituted (27.9.1999) by 1999 c. 22, ss. 60, 108(3)(b) (with Sch. 14 para. 7(2))
F208Words in s. 58(2) substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 40, 148(1), Sch. 9 para. 36(6); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Any judgment of a court of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal on any question shall, except where the judge presiding over the court states that in his opinion the question is one of law on which it is convenient that separate judgments should be pronounced by members of the court, be pronounced by the judge presiding over the court or by such other member of the court as he directs and, except as aforesaid, no judgment shall be separately pronounced on any question by any member of the court.
(1)Rules of court may provide for orders or judgments of any prescribed description to be treated for any prescribed purpose connected with appeals to the Court of Appeal as final or as interlocutory.
(2)No appeal shall lie from a decision of the Court of Appeal as to whether a judgment or order is, for any purpose connected with an appeal to that court, final or interlocutory.
(1)Subject to any provision made by or under this or any other Act (and in particular to any rules of court made in pursuance of subsection (2) and any order under subsection (3)), business in the High Court of any description mentioned in Schedule 1, as for the time being in force, shall be distributed among the Divisions in accordance with that Schedule.
(2)Rules of court may provide for the distribution of business in the High Court among the Divisions; but any rules made in pursuance of this subsection shall have effect subject to any orders for the time being in force under subsection (3).
(3)Subject to subsection (5), the [F209Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor,] by order—
(a)direct that any business in the High Court which is not for the time being assigned by or under this or any other Act to any Division be assigned to such Division as may be specified in the order;
(b)if at any time it [F210appears to the Lord Chief Justice and the Lord Chancellor] desirable to do so with a view to the more convenient administration of justice, direct that any business for the time being assigned by or under this or any other Act to any Division be assigned to such other Division as may be specified in the order; and
(c)amend Schedule 1 so far as may be necessary in consequence of provision made by order under paragraph (a) or (b).
(4)The powers conferred by subsection (2) and subsection (3) include power to assign business of any description to two or more Divisions concurrently.
(5) No order under subsection (3)(b) relating to any business shall be made without the concurrence of the senior judge of—
(a)the Division or each of the Divisions to which the business is for the time being assigned; and
(b)the Division or each of the Divisions to which the business is to be assigned by the order.
(6)Subject to rules of court, the fact that a cause or matter commenced in the High Court falls within a class of business assigned by or under this Act to a particular Division does not make it obligatory for it to be allocated or transferred to that Division.
(7)Without prejudice to subsections (1) to (5) and section 63, rules of court may provide for the distribution of the business (other than business required to be heard by a divisional court) in any Division of the High Court among the judges of that Division.
(8)Any order under subsection (3) shall be made by statutory instrument, which shall be laid before Parliament after being made.
[F211(9)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (3).]
Textual Amendments
F209Words in s. 61(3) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 129(2)(a); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F210Words in s. 61(3)(b) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 129(2)(b); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F211S. 61(9) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 129(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)The Patents Court shall take such proceedings relating to patents as are within the jurisdiction conferred on it by the M22Patents Act 1977, and such other proceedings relating to patents or other matters as may be prescribed.
(2)The Admiralty Court shall take Admiralty business, that is to say causes and matters assigned to the Queen’s Bench Division and involving the exercise of the High Court’s Admiralty jurisdiction or its jurisdiction as a prize court.
(3)The Commercial Court shall take such causes and matters as may in accordance with rules of court be entered in the commercial list.
Marginal Citations
(1)Any business assigned, in accordance with this or any other Act or rules of court, to one or more specially nominated judges of the High Court may—
(a)during vacation; or
(b)during the illness or absence of that judge or any of those judges; or
(c)for any other reasonable cause,
be dealt with by any judge of the High Court named for that purpose [F212by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor].
(2)If at any time it appears to the [F213Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor, to be] desirable to do so with a view to the more convenient administration of justice, he may by order direct that business of any description which is for the time being assigned, in accordance with this or any other Act or rules of court, to one or more specially nominated judges of the High Court shall cease to be so assigned and may be dealt with by any one or more judges of the High Court.
(3)An order under subsection (2) shall not be made in respect of any business without the concurrence of the senior judge of the Division to which the business is for the time being assigned.
[F214(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1) or (2).]
Textual Amendments
F212Words in s. 63(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 130(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F213Words in s. 63(2) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 130(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F214S. 63(4) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 130(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)Without prejudice to the power of transfer under section 65, the person by whom any cause or matter is commenced in the High Court shall in the prescribed manner allocate it to whichever Division he thinks fit.
(2)Where a cause or matter is commenced in the High Court, all subsequent interlocutory or other steps or proceedings in the High Court in that cause or matter shall be taken in the Division to which the cause or matter is for the time being allocated (whether under subsection (1) or in consequence of its transfer under section 65).
(1)Any cause or matter may at any time and at any stage thereof, and either with or without application from any of the parties, be transferred, by such authority and in such manner as rules of court may direct, from one Division or judge of the High Court to another Division or judge thereof.
(2)The transfer of a cause or matter under subsection (1) to a different Division or judge of the High Court shall not affect the validity of any steps or proceedings taken or order made in that cause or matter before the transfer.
(1)Divisional courts may be held for the transaction of any business in the High Court which is, by or by virtue of rules of court or any other statutory provision, required to be heard by a divisional court.
(2)Any number of divisional courts may sit at the same time.
(3)A divisional court shall be constituted of not less than two judges.
(4)Every judge of the High Court shall be qualified to sit in any divisional court.
(5)The judge who is, according to the order of precedence under this Act, the senior of the judges constituting a divisional court shall be the president of the court.
Business in the High Court shall be heard and disposed of in court except in so far as it may, under this or any other Act, under rules of court or in accordance with the practice of the court, be dealt with in chambers.
(1)Provision may be made by rules of court as to the cases in which jurisdiction of the High Court may be exercised by—
(a)such [F215Circuit judges, deputy Circuit judges or Recorders] as the [F216Lord Chief Justice may, after consulting the Lord Chancellor,] from time to time nominate to deal with official referees’ business; or
(b)special referees; [F217or
(c)masters, registrars, district registrars or other officers of the court.]
(2)Without prejudice to the generality of subsection (1), rules of court may in particular—
[F218(a)authorise the whole of any cause or matter, or any question or issue therein, to be tried before any such person as is mentioned in that subsection; or]
(b)authorise any question arising in any cause or matter to be referred to [F219a special referee] for inquiry and report.
(3)Rules of court shall not authorise the exercise of powers of attachment and committal by [F220a special referee or any officer or other staff of the court].
(4)Subject to subsection (5), the decision of
[F221(a)]any such person as is mentioned in subsection (1) [F222or
(b)any officer or other staff of the court]
may be called in question in such manner as may be prescribed by rules of court, whether by appeal to the Court of Appeal, or by an appeal or application to a divisional court or a judge in court or a judge in chambers, or by an adjournment to a judge in court or a judge in chambers.
(5)Rules of court may provide either generally or to a limited extent for decisions of [F223persons] nominated under subsection (1)(a) being called in question only by appeal on a question of law.
(6)The cases in which jurisdiction of the High Court may be exercised by [F223persons] nominated under subsection (1)(a) shall be known as “official referees’ business”; and, subject to rules of court, the distribution of official referees’ business among [F224persons] so nominated shall be determined in accordance with directions given [F225by the Lord Chief Justice after consulting the Lord Chancellor].
(7)Any reference to an official referee in any enactment, whenever passed, or in rules of court or any other instrument or document, whenever made, shall, unless the context otherwise requires, be construed as, or (where the context requires) as including a reference to a [F226person] nominated under subsection (1)(a).
[F227(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsections (1)(a) and (6).]
Textual Amendments
F215Words substituted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 59(1)
F216Words in s. 68(1)(a) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 131(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F217S. 68(1)(a) and the preceding word “or” omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(a); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F218S. 68(2)(a) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(b)(i); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F219Words in s. 68(2)(b) substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(b)(ii); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F220Words in s. 68(3) substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10,Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(c); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F221S. 68(4): "(a)" inserted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(d)(i); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F222S. 68(4)(b) and the preceding word “or” inserted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(3)(d)(ii); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(a)
F223Word substituted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 59(2)(a)(i)
F224Word substituted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 59(2)(a)(ii)
F225Words in s. 68(6) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 131(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F226Word substituted by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 59(2)(b)
F227S. 68(8) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 131(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)Where, on the application of any party to an action to be tried in the Queen’s Bench Division, the court is satisfied that there is in issue—
(a)a charge of fraud against that party; or
(b)a claim in respect of libel, slander, malicious prosecution or false imprisonment; or
(c)any question or issue of a kind prescribed for the purposes of this paragraph,
the action shall be tried with a jury, unless the court is of opinion that the trial requires any prolonged examination of documents or accounts or any scientific or local investigation which cannot conveniently be made with a jury.
(2)An application under subsection (1) must be made not later than such time before the trial as may be prescribed.
(3)An action to be tried in the Queen’s Bench Division which does not by virtue of subsection (1) fall to be tried with a jury shall be tried without a jury unless the court in its discretion orders it to be tried with a jury.
(4)Nothing in subsections (1) to (3) shall affect the power of the court to order, in accordance with rules of court, that different questions of fact arising in any action be tried by different modes of trial; and where any such order is made, subsection (1) shall have effect only as respects questions relating to any such charge, claim, question or issue as is mentioned in that subsection.
(5)Where for the purpose of disposing of any action or other matter which is being tried in the High Court by a judge with a jury it is necessary to ascertain the law of any other country which is applicable to the facts of the case, any question as to the effect of the evidence given with respect to that law shall, instead of being submitted to the jury, be decided by the judge alone.
(1)In any cause or matter before the High Court the court may, if it thinks it expedient to do so, call in the aid of one or more assessors specially qualified, and hear and dispose of the cause or matter wholly or partially with their assistance.
(2)The remuneration, if any, to be paid to an assessor for his services under subsection (1) in connection with any proceedings shall be determined by the court, and shall form part of the costs of the proceedings.
(3)Rules of court shall make provision for the appointment of scientific advisers to assist the Patents Court in proceedings under the M23Patents Act 1949 and the M24Patents Act 1977 and for regulating the functions of such advisers.
(4)The remuneration of any such adviser shall be determined by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service and shall be defrayed out of money provided by Parliament.
(1)Sittings of the High Court may be held, and any other business of the High Court may be conducted, at any place in England or Wales.
(2)Subject to rules of court—
(a)the places at which the High Court sits outside the Royal Courts of Justice; and
(b)the days and times when the High Court sits at any place outside the Royal Courts of Justice,
shall be determined in accordance with directions given by the Lord Chancellor [F228after consulting the Lord Chief Justice].
(3)Rules of court may make provision for regulating the vacations to be observed by the High Court and in the offices of that court.
(4)Rules of court—
(a)may provide for securing such sittings of any Division of the High Court during vacation as the senior judge of that Division may with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor determine; and
(b)without prejudice to paragraph (a), shall provide for the transaction during vacation by judges of the High Court of all such business in the High Court as may require to be immediately or promptly transacted.
(5)Different provision may be made in pursuance of subsection (3) for different parts of the country.
[F229(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F228Words in s. 71(2) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 132(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F229S. 71(6) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 132(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)In any proceedings to which this subsection applies a person shall not be excused, by reason that to do so would tend to expose that person, or his or her spouse [F230or civil partner], to proceedings for a related offence or for the recovery of a related penalty—
(a)from answering any questions put to that person in the first-mentioned proceedings; or
(b)from complying with any order made in those proceedings.
(2)Subsection (1) applies to the following civil proceedings in the High Court, namely—
(a)proceedings for infringement of rights pertaining to any intellectual property or for passing off;
(b)proceedings brought to obtain disclosure of information relating to any infringement of such rights or to any passing off; and
(c)proceedings brought to prevent any apprehended infringement of such rights or any apprehended passing off.
(3)Subject to subsection (4), no statement or admission made by a person—
(a)in answering a question put to him in any proceedings to which subsection (1) applies; or
(b)in complying with any order made in any such proceedings,
shall, in proceedings for any related offence or for the recovery of any related penalty, be admissible in evidence against that person or (unless they [F231married or became civil partners after the making of the statement or admission) against the spouse or civil partner] of that person.
(4)Nothing in subsection (3) shall render any statement or admission made by a person as there mentioned inadmissible in evidence against that person in proceedings for perjury or contempt of court.
(5)In this section—
“intellectual property” means any patent, trade mark, copyright [F232, design right], registered design, technical or commercial information or other intellectual property;
“
”, in relation to any proceedings to which subsection (1) applies, means—(a)in the case of proceedings within subsection (2)(a) or (b)—
(i)any offence committed by or in the course of the infringement or passing off to which those proceedings relate; or
(ii)any offence not within sub-paragraph (i) committed in connection with that infringement or passing off, being an offence involving fraud or dishonesty;
(b)in the case of proceedings within subsection (2)(c), any offence revealed by the facts on which the plaintiff relies in those proceedings;
“
”, in relation to any proceedings to which subsection (1) applies means—(a)in the case of proceedings within subsection (2)(a) or (b), any penalty incurred in respect of anything done or omitted in connection with the infringement or passing off to which those proceedings relate;
(b)in the case of proceedings within subsection (2)(c), any penalty incurred in respect of any act or omission revealed by the facts on which the plaintiff relies in those proceedings.
(6)Any reference in this section to civil proceedings in the High Court of any description includes a reference to proceedings on appeal arising out of civil proceedings in the High Court of that description.
Textual Amendments
F230Words in s. 72(1) inserted (5.12.2005) by Civil Partnership Act 2004 (c. 33), ss. 261(1), 263, Sch. 27 para. 69(2); S.I. 2005/3175, art. 2(2) (subject to art. 2(3)-(5))
F231Words in s. 72(3) inserted (5.12.2005) by Civil Partnership Act 2004 (c. 33), ss. 261(1), 263, Sch. 27 para. 69(3); S.I. 2005/3175, art. 2(2) (subject to art. 2(3)-(5))
F232Words inserted by Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988 (c. 48, SIF 67A), s. 303(1), Sch. 7 para. 28(1)(2)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C33S. 72 extended by Cable and Broadcasting Act 1984 (c. 46, SIF 96), s. 54(6) (Cable and Broadcasting Act 1984 (c. 46) is repealed by Broadcasting Act 1990 (c. 42, SIF 96), ss. 4(6), 87(6), 134, 203(3)(4), Sch. 12 Pt. II para. 1, Sch. 21, Sch. 22 para. 4, the repeal being in force 1.1.1991 subject to the provisions of art. 3 of S.I. 1990/2347)
S. 72(5) amended (31.10.1994) by 1994 c. 26, s. 106(1), Sch. 4 para. 1(2); S.I. 1994/2550, art.2
C34S. 72 extended by Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988 (c. 48, SIF 67A), ss. 296(6)(b), 298(4)
C35S. 72 applied (28.5.2000) by 1988 c. 48, s. 298(4) (as substituted (28.5.2000) by S.I. 2000/1175, reg. 2(3))
C36S. 72 applied (31.10.2003) by 1988 c. 48, ss. 296(7), 296ZA(5), 296ZD(6) (as inserted by The Copyright and Related Rights Regulations 2003 (S.I. 2003/2498), reg. 24(1) (with regs. 31-40))
C37S. 72 applied (31.10.2003) by 1988 (c. 48), s. 296ZG (as inserted by The Copyright and Related Rights Regulations 2003 (S.I. 2003/2498), reg. 25 (with regs. 31-40))
C38Definition of “intellectual property” extended by Patents, Designs and Marks Act 1986 (c. 39, SIF 67A), s. 2(3), Sch. 2 Pt I para. 1(2)(h)
(1)Subject to the provisions of section 8(1)(c), 74 and 75(2) as respects courts comprising justices of the peace, all proceedings in the Crown Court shall be heard and disposed of before a single judge of that court.
(2)[F233Rules of court] may authorise or require a judge of the High Court, Circuit judge [F234 , Recorder or qualifying judge advocate ] , in such circumstances as are specified by the rules, at any stage to continue with any proceedings with a court from which any one or more of the justices initially constituting the court has withdrawn, or is absent for any reason.
(3)Where a judge of the High Court, Circuit judge [F235 , Recorder or qualifying judge advocate ] sits with justices of the peace he shall preside, and—
(a)the decision of the Crown Court may be a majority decision; and
(b)if the members of the court are equally divided, the judge of the High Court, Circuit judge [F235 , Recorder or qualifying judge advocate ] shall have a second and casting vote.
Textual Amendments
F233Words in s. 73(2) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/3175), art. 3, Sch. para. 12(b) (with art. 2(2))
F234Words in s. 73(2) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 2; S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F235Words in s. 73(3) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 2; S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
(1)On any hearing by the Crown Court—
(a)of any appeal; F236. . .
F236(b). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
the Crown Court shall consist of a judge of the High Court or a Circuit judge or a Recorder [F237 or a qualifying judge advocate ] who, subject to the following provisions of this section, shall sit with not less than two nor more than four justices of the peace.
(2)[F238Rules of court] may, with respect to hearings falling within subsection (1)—
(a)prescribe the number of justices of the peace constituting the court (within the limits mentioned in that subsection); and
(b)prescribe the qualifications to be possessed by any such justices of the peace;
and the rules may make different provision for different descriptions of cases, different places of sitting or other different circumstances.
(3)[F238Rules of court] may authorise or require a judge of the High Court, Circuit judge [F239 , Recorder or qualifying judge advocate, ] in such circumstances as are specified by the rules, to enter on, or at any stage to continue with, any proceedings with a court not comprising the justices required by subsections (1) and (2).
(4)The Lord Chancellor may from time to time, having regard to the number of justices, or the number of justices with any prescribed qualifications, available for service in the Crown Court, give directions providing that, in such descriptions of proceedings as may be specified by the Lord Chancellor, the provisions of subsections (1) and (2) shall not apply.
(5)Directions under subsection (4) may frame descriptions of proceedings by reference to the place of trial, or by reference to the time of trial, or in any other way.
[F240(5A)Before exercising any functions under subsection (4), the Lord Chancellor must consult the Lord Chief Justice.]
(6)No decision of the Crown Court shall be questioned on the ground that the court was not constituted as required by or under subsections (1) and (2) unless objection was taken by or on behalf of a party to the proceedings not later than the time when the proceedings were entered on, or when the alleged irregularity began.
(7)[F238Rules of court] may make provision as to the circumstances in which—
(a)a person concerned with a decision appealed against is to be disqualified from hearing the appeal;
F241(b). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(c)proceedings on the hearing of an appeal F242. . . are to be valid notwithstanding that any person taking part in them is disqualified.
[F243(8)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F236S. 74(1)(b) and the preceding “or” repealed (12.11.1999) by 1999 c. 22, s. 106, Sch. 15 Pt. V(4) (with Sch. 14 paras. 7(2), 27, 36(9)); S.I. 1999/2657, art. 4
F237Words in s. 74(1) inserted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 3(a); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F238Words in s. 74(2)(3)(7) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 12(c) (with art. 2(2))
F239Words in s. 74(3) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 3(b); S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F240S. 74(5A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 133(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(p)
F241S. 74(7)(b) repealed (12.11.1999) by 1999 c. 22, s. 106, Sch. 15 Pt. V(4) (with Sch. 14 paras. 7(2), 27, 36(9)); S.I. 1999/2657, art. 4
F242Words in s. 74(7)(c) repealed (12.11.1999) by 1999 c. 22, s. 106, Sch. 15 Pt. V(4) (with Sch. 14 paras. 7(2), 27, 36(9)); S.I. 1999/2657, art. 4
F243S. 74(8) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 133(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 10, 11(p)
(1)The cases or classes of cases in the Crown Court suitable for allocation respectively to a judge of the High Court [F244, Circuit judge, Recorder, qualifying judge advocate or District Judge (Magistrates' Courts)] , and all other matters relating to the distribution of Crown Court business, shall be determined in accordance with directions given by or on behalf of the Lord Chief Justice with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor.
(2)Subject to section 74(1), the cases or classes of cases in the Crown Court suitable for allocation to a court comprising justices of the peace (including those by way of trial on indictment which are suitable for allocation to such a court) shall be determined in accordance with directions given by or on behalf of the Lord Chief Justice with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor.
Textual Amendments
F244Words in s. 75(1) substituted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 4; S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
(1)Without prejudice to the provisions of this Act about the distribution of Crown Court business, the Crown Court may give directions, or further directions, altering the place of any trial on indictment, whether by [F246varying the decision of a magistrates’ court under section 7 of the Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980 or [F247by substituting some other place for the place specified in a notice under [F248a relevant transfer provision] (notices of transfer from magistrates’ court to Crown Court)] [F246substituting some other place for the place specified in a notice under section 51D(1) of the Crime and Disorder Act 1998 (a “section 51D notice”) ] or by varying] a previous decision of the Crown Court.
(2)Directions under subsection (1) may be given on behalf of the Crown Court by an officer of the court.
[F249(2A)Where a preparatory hearing has been ordered under section 7 of the Criminal Justice Act 1987, directions altering the place of trial may be given under subsection (1) at any time before [F250the time when the jury are sworn].]
[F251(2B)The reference in subsection (2A) to the time when the jury are sworn includes the time when the jury would be sworn but for the making of an order under Part 7 of the Criminal Justice Act 2003.]
(3)The defendant or the prosecutor, if dissatisfied with the place of trial as [F252fixed by the magistrates' court, as specified in a notice under a relevant transfer provision] [F252specified in a section 51D notice] or as fixed by the Crown Court, may apply to the Crown Court for a direction, or further direction, varying the place of trial; and the court shall take the matter into consideration and may comply with or refuse the application, or give a direction not in compliance with the application, as the court thinks fit.
(4)F253. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F254(5)[F255In this section “relevant transfer provision” means—
(a)section 4 of the Criminal Justice Act 1987, or
(b)section 53 of the Criminal Justice Act 1991.]]
Textual Amendments
F245Word in s. 76 heading substituted (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(2)(d); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F246Words in s. 76(1) substituted (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(2)(a); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F247Words inserted by Criminal Justice Act 1987 (c. 38, SIF 39:1), s. 15, Sch. 2 para. 10(a)
F248Words in s. 76(1) substituted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 17(a) (by words at the end of para. 17 it is provided that amendments made by this paragraph shall cease to have effect on the coming into force of the amendments made by paragraph 51 of Schedule 4 to this Act); S.I. 1995/127, art. 2(1), Sch. 1, Appendix A
F249S. 76(2A) inserted by Criminal Justice Act 1987 (c. 38, SIF 39:1), s. 15, Sch. 2 para. 10(b)
F250Words in s. 76(2A) substituted (24.7.2006) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), ss. 331, 336, Sch. 36 para. 47(2); S.I. 2006/1835, art. 2(h) (subject to art. 3)
F251S. 76(2B) inserted (24.7.2006) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), ss. 331, 336, Sch. 36 para. 47(3); S.I. 2006/1835, art. 2(h) (subject to art. 3)
F252Words in s. 76(3) substituted (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(2)(b); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F253S. 76(4) repealed (1.5.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 86, 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2004/1104, art. 3(a)(h)(ii)(i)
F254S. 76(5) inserted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 17(c) (by words at the end of para. 17 it is provided that amendments made by this paragraph shall cease to have effect on the coming into force of the amendments made by paragraph 52 of Schedule 4 to this Act); S.I. 1995/127, art. 2(1), Sch. 1, Appendix A
F255S. 76(5) repealed (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(2)(c), Sch. 37 Pt. 4; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(d)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c)(d), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
(1)[F257Criminal Procedure Rules] shall prescribe the minimum and the maximum period which may elapse between a person’s [F258being sent for trial] and the beginning of the trial; and such rules may make different provision for different places of trial and for other different circumstances.
(2)The trial of a person [F259sent for trial]—
(a)shall not begin until the prescribed minimum period has expired except with his consent and the consent of the prosecutor;and
(b)shall not begin later than the expiry of the prescribed maximum period unless a judge of the Crown Court otherwise orders.
(3)For the purposes of this section the prescribed minimum and maximum periods shall begin with the date [F260when the defendant is sent for trial] and the trial shall be taken to begin when the defendant is arraigned.
[F261(4)[F262In this section “relevant transfer provision” means—
(a)section 4 of the Criminal Justice Act 1987, or
(b)section 53 of the Criminal Justice Act 1991.]]
Textual Amendments
F256Word in s. 77 heading substituted (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(3)(e); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F257Words in s. 77(1) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 13 (with art. 2(2))
F258Words in s. 77(1) substituted (9.5.2005 for specified purposes, 18.6.2012 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(3)(a); S.I. 2005/1267, art. 2(1)(2)(a), Sch. Pt. 1; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4)
F259Words in s. 77(2) substituted (9.5.2005 for specified purposes, 18.6.2012 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(3)(b); S.I. 2005/1267, art. 2(1)(2)(a), Sch. Pt. 1; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4)
F260Words in s. 77(3) substituted (9.5.2005 for specified purposes, 18.6.2012 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(3)(c); S.I. 2005/1267, art. 2(1)(2)(a), Sch. Pt. 1; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4)
F261S. 77(4) inserted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 18(d) (by words at the end of para. 18 it is provided that amendments made by this paragraph shall cease to have effect on the coming into force of the amendments made by paragraph 52 of Schedule 4 to this Act); S.I. 1995/127, art. 2(1), Sch. 1, Appendix A
F262S. 77(4) repealed (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(3)(d), Sch. 37 Pt. 4; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(d)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c)(d), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
(1)Any Crown Court business may be conducted at any place in England or Wales, and the sittings of the Crown Court at any place may be continuous or intermittent or occasional.
(2)Judges of the Crown Court may sit simultaneously to take any number of different cases in the same or different places, and may adjourn cases from place to place at any time.
(3)The places at which the Crown Court sits, and the days and times at which the Crown Court sits at any place, shall be determined in accordance with directions given by the Lord Chancellor [F263after consulting the Lord Chief Justice].
[F264(4)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F263Words in s. 78(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 134(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F264S. 78(4) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 134(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)All enactments and rules of law relating to procedure in connection with indictable offences shall continue to have effect in relation to proceedings in the Crown Court.
(2)Without prejudice to the generality of subsection (1), that subsection applies in particular to—
(a)the practice by which, on any one indictment, the taking of pleas, the trial by jury and the pronouncement of judgment may respectively be by or before different judges;
(b)the release, after respite of judgment, of a convicted person on recognizance to come up for judgment if called on, but meanwhile to be of good behaviour;
(c)the manner of trying any question relating to the breach of a recognizance;
(d)the manner of execution of any sentence on conviction, or the manner in which any other judgment or order given in connection with trial on indictment may be enforced.
(3)The customary practice and procedure with respect to appeals to the Crown Court, and in particular any practice as to the extent to which an appeal is by way of rehearing of the case, shall continue to be observed.
(1)Any direction to appear and any condition of a recognizance to appear before the Crown Court, and any summons or order to appear before that court, may be so framed as to require appearance at such time and place as may be directed by the Crown Court, and if a time or place is specified in the direction, condition, summons or order, it may be varied by any subsequent direction of the Crown Court.
(2)Where an indictment has been signed although the person charged has not been [F265sent] for trial, the Crown Court may issue a summons requiring that person to appear before the Crown Court, or may issue a warrant for his arrest.
(3)Section 4 of the M25Summary Jurisdiction (Process) Act 1881 (execution of process of English courts in Scotland) shall apply to process issued under this section as it applies to process issued under the M26Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980 by a magistrates’ court.
Textual Amendments
F265Word in s. 80(2) substituted (9.5.2005 for specified purposes, 18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(4); S.I. 2005/1267, art. 2(1)(2)(a), Sch. Pt. 1; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
Marginal Citations
(1)The Crown Court may [F266,subject to section 25 of the Criminal Justice and Public Order Act 1994,] grant bail to any person—
(a)[F267who has been committed in custody for appearance before the Crown Court [F268or in relation to whose case a notice of transfer has been given under [F269a relevant transfer provision][F270or] who has been sent in custody to the Crown Court for trial under section 51 [F271or 51A] of the Crime and Disorder Act 1998]]; or
(b)who is in custody pursuant to a sentence imposed by a magistrates’ court, and who has appealed to the Crown Court against his conviction or sentence; or
(c)who is in the custody of the Crown Court pending the disposal of his case by that court; or
(d)who, after the decision of his case by the Crown Court, has applied to that court for the statement of a case for the High Court on that decision; or
(e)who has applied to the High Court for [F272a quashing order] to remove proceedings in the Crown Court in his case into the High Court, or has applied to the High Court for leave to make such an application; [F273or
(f)to whom the Crown Court has granted a certificate under section 1(2) or 11(1A) of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968 or under subsection (1B) below;][F274or
(g)who has been remanded in custody by a magistrates’ court on adjourning a case under [F275section 11 of the Powers of Criminal Courts (Sentencing) Act 2000 (remand for medical examination) [F276 , section 52(5) of the Crime and Disorder Act 1998 (adjournment of proceedings under section 51 etc) ] or]—
(i)[F277section 5 (adjournment of inquiry into offence); ]
(ii)section 10 (adjournment of trial); F278...
[F279(iia)section 17C (intention as to plea: adjournment);]
(iii)section 18 (initial procedure on information against adult for offence triable either way); F280. . .[F281or
(iiia)section 24C (intention as to plea by child or young person: adjournment);]
F280(iv). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .]
[F282(h)in respect of whom a judge of the Crown Court is required to make a decision pursuant to section 115(3) of the Coroners and Justice Act 2009 (bail decisions in murder cases to be made by Crown Court judge);”, and]
and the time during which a person is released on bail under any provision of this subsection shall not count as part of any term of imprisonment or detention under his sentence.
[F283(1A)The power conferred by subsection (1)(f) does not extend to a case to which section 12 or 15 of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968 (appeal against verdict of not guilty by reason of insanity or against [F284findings that the accused is under a disability and that he did the act or made the omission charged against him]) applies.
(1B)A certificate under this subsection is a certificate that a case is fit for appeal on a ground which involves a question of law alone.
(1C)The power conferred by subsection (1)(f) is to be exercised—
(a)where the appeal is under section 1 or 9 of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968, by the judge who tried the case; and
(b)where it is under section 10 of that Act, by the judge who passed the sentence.
(1D)The power may only be exercised within twenty-eight days from the date of the conviction appealed against, or in the case of appeal against sentence, from the date on which sentence was passed or, in the case of an order made or treated as made on conviction, from the date of the making of the order.
(1E)The power may not be exercised if the appellant has made an application to the Court of Appeal for bail in respect of the offence or offences to which the appeal relates.
(1F)It shall be a condition of bail granted in the exercise of the power that, unless a notice of appeal has previously been lodged in accordance with subsection (1) of section 18 of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968—
(a)such a notice shall be so lodged within the period specified in subsection (2) of that section; and
(b)not later than 14 days from the end of that period, the appellant shall lodge with the Crown Court a certificate from the registrar of criminal appeals that a notice of appeal was given within that period.
(1G)If the Crown Court grants bail to a person in the exercise of the power, it may direct him to appear—
(a)if a notice of appeal is lodged within the period specified in section 18(2) of the Criminal Appeal Act 1968 at such time and place as the Court of Appeal may require; and
(b)if no such notice is lodged within that period, at such time and place as the Crown Court may require.]
[F285(1H) Where the Crown Court grants a person bail under subsection (1)(g) it may direct him to appear at a time and place which the magistrates’ court could have directed and the recognizance of any surety shall be conditioned accordingly.
(1J)The Crown Court may only grant bail to a person under subsection (1)(g) if the magistrates’ court which remanded him in custody has certified under section 5(6A) of the Bail Act 1976 that it heard full argument on his application for bail before it refused the application.]
(2)Provision may be made by [F286rules of court] as respects the powers of the Crown Court relating to bail, including any provision—
(a)except in the case of bail in criminal proceedings (within the meaning of the M27Bail Act 1976), allowing the court instead of requiring a person to enter into a recognizance, to consent to his giving other security;
(b)allowing the court to direct that a recognizance shall be entered into or other security given before a magistrates’ court or a justice of the peace, or, if the rules so provide, a person of such other description as is specified in the rules;
(c)prescribing the manner in which a recognizance is to be entered into or other security given, and the persons by whom and the manner in which the recognizance or security may be enforced;
(d)authorising the recommittal, in such cases and by such courts or justices as may be prescribed by the rules, of persons released from custody in pursuance of the powers;
(e)making provision corresponding to sections 118 and 119 of the M28Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980 (varying or dispensing with requirements as to sureties, and postponement of taking recognizances).
(3)Any reference in any enactment to a recognizance shall include, unless the context otherwise requires, a reference to any other description of security given instead of a recognizance, whether in pursuance of subsection (2)(a) or otherwise.
(4)The Crown Court, on issuing a warrant for the arrest of any person, may endorse the warrant for bail, and in any such case—
(a)the person arrested under the warrant shall, unless the Crown Court otherwise directs, be taken to a police station; and
(b)the officer in charge of the station shall release him from custody if he, and any sureties required by the endorsement and approved by the officer, enter into recognizances of such amount as may be fixed by the endorsement:
Provided that in the case of bail in criminal proceedings (within the meaning of the M29Bail Act 1976) the person arrested shall not be required to enter into a recognizance.
(5)A person in custody in pursuance of a warrant issued by the Crown Court with a view to his appearance before that court shall be brought forthwith before [F287—
(a)if the person is charged with murder or with murder and one or more other offences, the Crown Court, and
(b)in any other case, either the Crown Court or a magistrates' court.]
(6)A magistrates’ court shall have jurisdiction, and a justice of the peace may act, under or in pursuance of rules under subsection (2) whether or not the offence was committed, or the arrest was made, within the court’s area, or the area for which he was appointed.
[F288(7)[F289In subsection (1) above “relevant transfer provision” means—
(a)section 4 of the Criminal Justice Act 1987, or
(b)section 53 of the Criminal Justice Act 1991.]]
Textual Amendments
F266Words in s. 81(1) inserted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(2), Sch. 10 para. 48; S.I. 1995/721, art. 2, Sch. Appendix A
F267Words in s. 81(1)(a) repealed (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(5)(a)(i), Sch. 37 Pt. 4; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(d)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c)(d), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F268Words inserted by Criminal Justice Act 1987 (c. 38 SIF 39:1), s. 15, Sch. 2 para. 12
F269Words in s. 81(1)(a) substituted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 19(a); S.I. 1995/127, art. 2(1), Sch. 1, Appendix A
F270Words in s. 81(1)(a) inserted (4.1.1999 for certain purposes and otherwise 15.1.2001) (after the words “Criminal Justice Act 1987” which words had been previously replaced by the substition made by 1994 c. 33, Sch. 9 para. 19(a)) by 1998 c. 37, s. 119, Sch. 8 para. 48; S.I. 1998/2327, art.4(2)(c); S.I. 2000/3283, art. 2(c)
F271Words in s. 81(1)(a) inserted (9.5.2005 for specified purposes, 18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(5)(a)(i), (b); S.I. 2005/1267, art. 2(1)(2)(b), Sch. Pt. 2; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4)
F272Words in s. 81(1)(e) substituted (1.5.2004) by The Civil Procedure (Modification of Supreme Court Act 1981) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/1033), art. 6
F273S. 81(1)(f) and the preceding word “or” added by Criminal Justice Act 1982 (c. 48, SIF 39:1), s. 29(1)(a)
F274S. 81(1)(g) and the preceding word “or” added by Criminal Justice Act 1982 (c. 48, SIF 39:1), s. 60(1)(a)
F275Words in s. 81(1)(g) inserted (25.8.2000) by 2000 c. 6, ss. 165(1), 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 87(a)
F276Words in s. 81(1)(g) inserted (18.6.2012) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 36 para. 4(2); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 3(e)
F277S. 81(1)(g)(i) repealed (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(5)(a)(ii), Sch. 37 Pt. 4; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(d)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c)(d), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
F278Word in s. 81(1)(g)(ii) repealed (18.6.2012) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 36 para. 4(3), Sch. 37 Pt. 2; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 3(e)(f)(i)
F279S. 81(1)(g)(iia) inserted (18.6.2012) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 36 para. 4(3); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 3(e)
F280S. 81(1)(g)(iv) and the word “or” immediately preceding it repealed (25.8.2000) by 2000 c. 6, ss. 165(1)(4), 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 87(c), Sch. 12 Pt. I (with Sch. 11 paras. 1, 2)
F281S. 81(1)(g)(iiia) and word inserted (18.6.2012) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 36 para. 4(4); S.I. 2012/1320, art. 3(e)
F282S. 81(1)(h) inserted (1.2.2010) by Coroners and Justice Act 2009 (c. 25), s. 182(5), Sch. 21 para. 76(a) (with s. 180); S.I. 2010/145, art. 2(2), Sch. para. 25(b)
F283S. 81(1A)–(1G) inserted by Criminal Justice Act 1982 (c. 48, SIF 39:1), s. 29(1)(b)
F284Words in s. 81(1A) substituted (01.01.1992) by Criminal Procedure (Insanity and Unfitness to Plead) Act 1991 (c. 25, SIF 39:1) ss. 7, 8, Sch. 3 para. 6; S.I. 1991/2488, art. 2.
F285S. 81(1H)(1J) inserted by Criminal Justice Act 1982 (c. 48, SIF 39:1), s. 60(1)(b)
F286Words in s. 81(2) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 14 (with art. 2(2))
F287Words in s. 81(5) substituted (1.2.2010) by Coroners and Justice Act 2009 (c. 25), s. 182(5), Sch. 21 para. 76(b) (with s. 180); S.I. 2010/145, art. 2(2), Sch. para. 25(b)
F288S. 81(7) inserted (3.2.1995) by 1994 c. 33, s. 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 19(b); S.I. 1995/127, art. 2(1), Sch. 1, Appendix A
F289S. 81(7) repealed (18.6.2012 for specified purposes, 5.11.2012 for specified purposes, 28.5.2013 for specified purposes) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), s. 336(3)(4), Sch. 3 para. 54(5)(b), Sch. 37 Pt. 4; S.I. 2012/1320, art. 4(1)(c)(d)(2)(3) (with art. 5) (see S.I. 2012/2574, art. 4(2) and S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2012/2574, art. 2(2)(3)(c)(d), Sch. (with arts. 3, 4) (as amended (4.11.2012) by S.I. 2012/2761, art. 2) (with S.I. 2013/1103, art. 4); S.I. 2013/1103, art. 2(1)(c)(2)(3) (with arts. 3, 4)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C39S. 81(5) excluded (4.4.2005) by Criminal Justice Act 2003 (c. 44), ss. 89(6), 336; S.I. 2005/950, art. 2, Sch. 1 (subject to Sch. 2)
C40S. 81(5) excluded (30.11.2009) by Criminal Justice and Immigration Act 2008 (c. 4), ss. 2, 153, Sch. 2 para. 21(3); S.I. 2009/ 3074, {art. 2(n)}
Marginal Citations
(1)The officers of the Crown Court shall be responsible for the keeping of the records of the proceedings of the court, [F290the signing of indictments,] the notification to the parties or their legal advisers of the place and time appointed for any proceedings, and such other formal or administrative matters as may be specified by directions given by the Lord Chancellor [F291after consulting the Lord Chief Justice].
(2)Officers of the Crown Court shall in particular give effect to any orders or directions of the court for taking into custody, and detaining, any person committing contempt of court, and shall execute any order or warrant duly issued by the court for the committal of any person to prison for contempt of court.
[F292(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F290Words in s. 82(1) repealed (with retrospective effect in accordance with Sch. 22 para. 26 of the repealing Act) by Coroners and Justice Act 2009 (c. 25), ss. 116(2), 182(1)(b), Sch. 23 Pt. 3 (with s. 180)
F291Words in s. 82(1) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 135(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F292S. 82(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 135(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
Textual Amendments
F293S. 83 repealed (31.7.2000) by 1999 c. 22, s. 106, Sch. 15 Pt. II (with Sch. 14 paras. 7(2), 36(9)); S.I. 2000/1920, art. 2(c)
(1)Rules of court may be made for the purpose of regulating and prescribing [F294, except in relation to any criminal cause or matter,] the practice and procedure to be followed in the [F295Crown Court F296. . . ].
(2)Without prejudice to the generality of subsection (1), the matters about which rules of court may be made under this section include all matters of practice and procedure in the [F297Senior Courts] which were regulated or prescribed by rules of court immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(3)No provision of this or any other Act, or contained in any instrument made under any Act, which—
(a)authorises or requires the making of rules of court about any particular matter or for any particular purpose; or
(b)provides (in whatever words) that the power to make rules of court under this section is to include power to make rules about any particular matter or for any particular purpose,
shall be taken as derogating from the generality of subsection (1).
[F298(4)Rules made under this section shall have effect subject to any special rules for the time being in force in relation to proceedings in the [F297Senior Courts] of any particular kind.]
[F299(5)Special rules may apply—
(a)any rules made under this section,F300. . .
(b)Civil Procedure Rules,
to proceedings to which the special rules apply.
[F301(c)Criminal Procedure Rules, or
(d)Family Procedure Rules,]
(5A)Rules made under this section may apply—
(a)any special rules,F300. . .
(b)Civil Procedure Rules,
to proceedings to which rules made under this section apply.
[F301(c)Criminal Procedure Rules, or
(d)Family Procedure Rules,]
(6)Where rules may be applied under subsection (5) or (5A), they may be applied—
(a)to any extent,
(b)with or without modification, and
(c)as amended from time to time.]
(7)No rule which may involve an increase of expenditure out of public funds may be made under this section except with the concurrence of the Treasury, but the validity of any rule made under this section shall not be called in question in any proceedings in any court either by the court or by any party to the proceedings on the ground only that it was a rule as to the making of which the concurrence of the Treasury was necessary and that the Treasury did not concur or are not expressed to have concurred.
(8)F302. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(9)In this section “special rules” means rules applying to proceedings of any particular kind in the [F297Senior Courts], being rules made by an authority other than the [F303Civil Procedure Rule Committee][F304, the Family Procedure Rule Committee, the Criminal Procedure Rule Committee,] or the Crown Court Rule Committee under any provision of this or any other Act which (in whatever words) confers on that authority power to make rules in relation to proceedings of that kind in the [F297Senior Courts].
Textual Amendments
F294Words in s. 84(1) inserted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 15(2)(a) (with art. 2(2))
F295Words in s. 84(1) substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(4)(a); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(b)
F296Words in s. 84(1) omitted (1.9.2004) by virtue of The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 15(2)(b) (with art. 2(2))
F297Words in s. 84 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1)(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F298S. 84(4) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(4)(b); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(b)
F299S. 84(5)(5A)(6) substituted (27.4.1997) for s. 84(5)(6) by 1997 c. 12, ss. 10, 11(2), Sch. 2 para. 1(4)(c); S.I. 1997/841, arts. 3(b), 4(b)
F300Word in s. 84(5)(5A) omitted (1.9.2004) by virtue of The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 15(3)(a) (with art. 2(2))
F301S. 84(5)(c)(d)(5A)(c)(d) inserted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 15(3)(b) (with art. 2(2))
F302S. 84(8) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 146, 148, Sch. 4 para. 136, Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(p), 29, 30(b)
F303Words in s. 84 substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(4)(d); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(b)
F304Words in s. 84(9) inserted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 15(4) (with art. 2(2))
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C42S. 84 extended (1. 10. 1992) by Criminal Justice Act 1991 (c. 53, SIF 39:1), ss. 20(5)(a), 101(1), Sch. 12, para. 6; S.I. 1992/333, art. 2(2), Sch. 2.
S. 84 extended (4.7.1996 but with effect as mentioned in s. 1 (3)(5)) by 1996 c. 25, s. 19(1) (with s. 78(1)); S.I. 1997/682.
(1)The power to make rules of court under section 84 in relation to the High Court and the civil division of the Court of Appeal shall be exercisable by the Lord Chancellor together with any four or more of the following persons, namely—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice,
(b)the Master of the Rolls,
(c)the President of the Family Division,
(d)the Vice-Chancellor,
(e)three other judges of the [F307Senior Courts],
[F308(f)two persons who have a [F307Senior Courts] qualification (within the meaning of section 71 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990); and
(g)two persons who have been granted by an authorised body, under Part II of that Act, the right to conduct litigation in relation to all proceedings in the [F307Senior Courts].]
(2)The persons mentioned in subsection (1), acting in pursuance of that subsection, shall be known as “the [F307Senior Courts] Rule Committee”.
(3)The persons to act in pursuance of subsection (1) with the Lord Chancellor, other than those eligible to act by virtue of their office, shall be appointed by the Lord Chancellor for such time as he may think fit.
[F309(4)Before appointing a person under paragraph (f) or (g) of subsection (1), the Lord Chancellor shall consult any authorised body with members who are eligible for appointment under that paragraph.]]
Textual Amendments
F305Words in s. 85 sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F306S. 85 omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(5); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(c)
F307Words in s. 85 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F308S. 85(1)(f)(g) substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(3), Sch. 18 para. 36(1)(a)
(1)The power to make rules of court under section 84 F310. . . shall be exercisable [F311by a committee known as the Crown Court Rule Committee, which is to consist of the following persons—]
(a)the Lord Chief Justice,
(b)two other judges of the [F312Senior Courts],
(c)two Circuit judges,
(d)F313. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(e)a justice of the peace,
[F314(f)two persons who have a [F312Senior Courts] qualification (within the meaning of section 71 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990); and
(g)two persons who have been [F315authorised by a relevant approved regulator] to conduct litigation in relation to all proceedings in the [F312Senior Courts].]
[F316(2)The members of the Crown Court Rule Committee, other than those eligible to act by virtue of their office, are appointed under subsection (3) or (4).
(3)The Lord Chief Justice must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (b), (c) and (e) of subsection (1), after consulting the Lord Chancellor.
(4)The Lord Chancellor must appoint the persons referred to in paragraphs (f) and (g) of subsection (1), after consulting the following—
(a)the Lord Chief Justice;
(b)any authorised body with members who are eligible for appointment under the relevant paragraph.
(5)A person is to be appointed under subsection (3) or (4) for such period as the Lord Chancellor determines after consulting the Lord Chief Justice.
(6)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
[F317(7)In this section “relevant approved regulator” is to be construed in accordance with section 20(3) of the Legal Services Act 2007.]
Textual Amendments
F310Words in s. 86(1) omitted (1.9.2004) by virtue of The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 16(a) (with art. 2(2))
F311Words in s. 86(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 137(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. paras. 10, 11(p)
F312Words in s. 86 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1)(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F313S. 86(1)(d) omitted (1.9.2004) by virtue of The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 16(b) (with art. 2(2))
F314S. 86(1)(f)(g) substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(3), Sch. 18 para. 36(2)(a)
F315Words in s. 86(1)(g) substituted (1.1.2010) by Legal Services Act 2007 (c. 29), ss. 208, 211, Sch. 21 para. 46(a) (with ss. 29, 192, 193); S.I. 2009/3250, art. 2(h)
F316S. 86(2)-(6) substituted (3.4.2006) for s. 86(2)-(4) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 137(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. paras. 10, 11(p)
F317S. 86(7) inserted (1.1.2010) by Legal Services Act 2007 (c. 29), ss. 208, 211, Sch. 21 para. 46(b) (with ss. 29, 192, 193); S.I. 2009/3250, art. 2(h)
(1)Crown Court rules must be—
(a)signed by a majority of the members of the Crown Court Rule Committee, and
(b)submitted to the Lord Chancellor.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may allow or disallow rules so made.
(3)If the Lord Chancellor disallows rules, he must give the Committee written reasons for doing so.
(4)Rules so made and allowed by the Lord Chancellor—
(a)come into force on such day as the Lord Chancellor directs, and
(b)are to be contained in a statutory instrument to which the Statutory Instruments Act 1946 applies as if the instrument contained rules made by a Minister of the Crown.
(5)A statutory instrument containing Crown Court rules is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
(6)In this section and section 86B “Crown Court rules” means rules of court made under section 84.
Textual Amendments
F318Ss. 86A, 86B inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 138; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. para. 11(p)
(1)This section applies if the Lord Chancellor gives the Crown Court Rule Committee written notice that he thinks it is expedient for Crown Court rules to include provision that would achieve a purpose specified in the notice.
(2)The Committee must make such Crown Court rules as it considers necessary to achieve the specified purpose.
(3)Those rules must be—
(a)made within a reasonable period after the Lord Chancellor gives notice to the Committee;
(b)made in accordance with section 86A.]
Textual Amendments
F318Ss. 86A, 86B inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 138; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. para. 11(p)
[F319(1)Rules of court may make provision for regulating the means by which particular facts may be proved, and the mode in which evidence thereof may be given, in any proceedings in the High Court or in the civil division of the Court of Appeal or on any application in connection with or at any stage of any such proceedings.
(2)Rules of court may make provision—
(a)for enabling proceedings to be commenced in the High Court against the estate of a deceased person (whether by the appointment of a person to represent the estate or otherwise) where no grant of probate or administration has been made;
(b)for enabling proceedings purporting to have been commenced in that court against a person to be treated, if he was dead at their commencement, as having been commenced against his estate, whether or not a grant of probate or administration was made before their commencement; and
(c)for enabling any proceedings commenced or treated as commenced in that court against the estate of a deceased person to be maintained (whether by substitution of parties, amendment or otherwise) against a person appointed to represent the estate or, if a grant of probate or administration is or has been made, against the personal representatives.]
(3)Rules of court [F320made under section 84] may amend or repeal any statutory provision relating to the practice and procedure of the [F321Crown Court [F322(except so far as relating to criminal causes or matters)]] so far as may be necessary in consequence of provision made by the rules.
(4)[F323Criminal Procedure Rules] may require courts from which an appeal lies to the criminal division of the Court of Appeal to furnish that division with any assistance or information which it may request for the purpose of exercising its jurisdiction.
(5)[F324Rules of court made under section 84] may amend or repeal any statutory provision about appeals to the Crown Court so far as it relates to the practice and procedure with respect to such appeals [F325(except so far as relating to criminal causes or matters)].
Textual Amendments
F319S. 87(1)(2) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(6)(a); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(d)
F320Words in s. 87(3) inserted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 17(2)(a) (with art. 2(2))
F321Words in s. 87(3) substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(6)(b); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(d)
F322Words in s. 87(3) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 17(2)(b) (with art. 2(2))
F323Words in s. 87(4) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 17(3) (with art. 2(2))
F324Words in s. 87(5) substituted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 17(4)(a) (with art. 2(2))
F325Words in s. 87(5) inserted (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 17(4)(b) (with art. 2(2))
Textual Amendments
F326Words in s. 88 cross-heading substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
A person shall not be qualified for appointment to any office in the [F327Senior Courts] listed in column 1 of any Part of Schedule 2 unless he is a person of any description specified in relation to that office in column 2 of that Part.
Textual Amendments
F327Words in s. 88 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
(1)The power to make appointments to the offices in the [F328Senior Courts] listed in column 1 of Parts II and III of Schedule 2 shall be exercisable by [F329Her Majesty.]
[F330(1A)The maximum number of appointments under subsection (1) is such as may be determined from time to time by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Treasury.]
(2)The person appointed to the office of Queen’s coroner and attorney and master of the Crown Office [F331and Registrar of criminal appeals] shall, by virtue of his appointment, be a master of the Queen’s Bench Division.
[F332(3)Her Majesty shall, on the recommendation of the Lord Chancellor, appoint a person to each office listed in the first column of the table in subsection (3C) (“a senior office”).
(3A)A person may be appointed to a senior office only if—
(a)he holds the office in the corresponding entry in the second column of that table (“the qualifying office”), or
(b)he does not hold the qualifying office but could be appointed to it in compliance with section 88.
(3B)Where a person who is to be appointed to a senior office meets the condition in subsection (3A)(b) he shall, when appointed to the senior office, also be appointed to the qualifying office.
(3C)This is the table referred to in subsections (3) and (3A)—
Senior office | Qualifying office |
---|---|
Senior Master of the Queen's Bench Division | Master of the Queen's Bench Division |
Chief Chancery Master | Master of the Chancery Division |
Chief Taxing Master | Taxing master of the Senior Courts |
Chief Bankruptcy Registrar | Registrar in bankruptcy of the High Court |
Senior District Judge of the Family Division | Registrar of the Principal Registry of the Family Division] |
(4)The person appointed Senior Master under subsection (3)(a) shall hold and perform the duties of the offices of the Queen’s Remembrancer and registrar of judgments.
F333(5)—(7). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F334(7A)A person appointed under subsection (1) is to be paid such salary, and a person appointed to a senior office is to be paid such additional salary, as may be determined by the Lord Chancellor with the concurrence of the Treasury.
(7B)A salary payable under or by virtue of this section—
(a)may in any case be increased, but
(b)may not, in the case of a salary payable in respect of an office listed in column 1 of Part 2 of Schedule 2 or of a senior office, be reduced,
by a determination or further determination under this section.]
(8)Salaries payable under or by virtue of this section shall be paid out of money provided by Parliament.
Textual Amendments
F328Words in s. 89 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F329Words in s. 89(1) substituted (3.4.2006 for certain purposes and otherwise prosp.) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 14, 148, Sch. 3 para. 3(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 9
F330S. 89(1A) inserted (3.4.2006 for certain purposes and otherwise prosp.) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 14, 148, Sch. 3 para. 3(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 9
F331Words inserted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(3), Sch. 18 para. 37
F332S. 89(3)-(3C) substituted (3.4.2006) for s. 89(3) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 14, 148, Sch. 3 para. 3(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 11 para. 9
F333S. 89(5)(6)(7) repealed by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1989 (c. 43), s. 1(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
F334S. 89(7A)(7B) inserted (3.4.2006 for certain purposes and otherwise prosp.) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 14, 148, Sch. 3 para. 3(5); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 9
(1)There shall continue to be an Official Solicitor to the [F335Senior Courts], who shall be appointed by the Lord Chancellor.
(2)There shall be paid to the Official Solicitor out of money provided by Parliament such salary as the Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service, determine.
(3)The Official Solicitor shall have such powers and perform such duties as may for the time being be conferred or imposed on the holder of that office—
(a)by or under this or any other Act; or
(b)by or in accordance with any direction given (before or after the commencement of this Act) by the Lord Chancellor.
[F336(3A)The holder for the time being of the office of Official Solicitor shall have the right to conduct litigation in relation to any proceedings.
(3B)When acting as Official Solicitor a person who would otherwise have the right to conduct litigation by virtue of [F337the fact that he is a person who, for the purposes of the Legal Services Act 2007, is an authorised person in relation to an activity which constitutes the conduct of litigation (within the meaning of that Act)] shall be treated as having acquired that right solely by virtue of subsection (3A).]
(4)If—
(a)the Official Solicitor is not available because of his absence or for some other reason; or
(b)his office is vacant,
then, during such unavailability or vacancy, any powers or duties of the Official Solicitor shall be exercisable or fall to be performed by any person for the time being appointed by the Lord Chancellor as deputy to the Official Solicitor (and any property vested in the Official Solicitor may accordingly be dealt with by any such person in all respects as if it were vested in him instead).
Textual Amendments
F335Words in s. 90 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F336S. 90(3A)(3B) inserted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(3), Sch. 18 para. 39
F337Words in s. 90(3B) substituted (1.1.2010) by Legal Services Act 2007 (c. 29), ss. 208, 211, Sch. 21 para. 47 (with ss. 29, 192, 193); S.I. 2009/3250, art. 2(h)
(1)If it appears to [F338the Lord Chancellor] that it is expedient to do so in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the [F339Senior Courts], he may appoint a person—
(a)to act as a deputy for any person holding an office listed in column 1 of Part II F340. . . of Schedule 2; or
(b)to act as a temporary additional officer in any such office,
during such period or on such occasions as [F341[F342the Lord Chancellor may] think fit].
[F343(1ZA)The Lord Chancellor may not appoint a holder of relevant office under subsection (1) without the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice.
(1ZB)Section 85 of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (selection of certain office holders) does not apply to an appointment to which subsection (1ZA) applies.
(1ZC)In this section a “holder of relevant office” means a person who holds, or has held within two years ending with the date when his appointment under this section takes effect—
(a)any office listed in column 1 of Part 2 or 3 of Schedule 2, or
(b)the office of district judge.]
[F344(1A)If it appears to the Lord Chancellor that it is expedient to do so in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the Senior Courts, he may appoint a person—
(a)to act as a deputy for any person holding an office listed in column 1 of Part 3 of Schedule 2; or
(b)to act as a temporary additional officer in any such office,
during such period or on such occasions as the Lord Chancellor may think fit.]
(2)Subject to subsection (3), a person shall not be qualified for appointment under this section if the office in which he would act by virtue of the appointment is one to which he is not qualified for permanent appointment.
[F345(3)An appointment under this section may extend until the day on which a person attains the age of seventy-five years if it is an appointment of a holder of relevant office.]
(4)Every person, while acting under this section, shall have all the jurisdiction of a person permanently appointed to the office in which he is acting.
F346(5). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(6)The Lord Chancellor may, out of money provided by Parliament, pay to any person appointed under this section such remuneration and allowances as he may, with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service, determine.
[F347(7)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under [F348subsection (1ZA)].]
Textual Amendments
F338Words in s. 91(1) substituted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(2)(a), 148(5)
F339Words in s. 91 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F340Words in s. 91(1)(a) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 139(2)(b), Sch. 18 Pt. 2; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. paras. 11(p), 30(b)
F341Words in s. 91(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 139(2)(c); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. para. 11(p)
F342Words in s. 91(1) substituted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(2)(b), 148(5)
F343S. 91(1ZA)-(1ZC) inserted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(3), 148(5)
F344S. 91(1A) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 139(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. para. 11(p)
F345S. 91(3) substituted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(3), 148(5)
F347S. 91(7) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 139(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. para. 11(p)
F348Words in s. 91(7) substituted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(5), 148(5)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C43S. 91(1)(3) restricted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26(7)(f), (with Sch. 7 paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
Textual Amendments
F349Words in s. 92 cross-heading substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
(1)Subject to the following provisions of this section [F350, to section 91(3)][F351and to subsections (4) to (6) of section 26 of the Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993 (Lord Chancellor’s power to authorise continuance in office up to the age of 75)], a person who holds an office to which this subsection applies shall vacate it [F352on the day on which he attains the age of seventy years.]
[F353(2)Subsection (1) applies to the offices listed in column 1 of Part II of Schedule 2 F354. . . .
(2A)Subject to the following provisions of this section, a person who holds an office to which this subsection applies shall vacate it at the end of the completed year of service in the course of which he attains the age of sixy-two years.
(2B)Subsection (2A) applies to the offices listed in column 1 of Part I of Schedule 2 F355. . ..
F356(2C). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .]
(2D)F357. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(2E)F357. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F356(3). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F358(3A)Where the Lord Chancellor considers it desirable in the public interest to retain in office a person who holds an office to which subsection (2A) applies after the time when he would otherwise retire in accordance with that subsection, the Lord Chancellor may from time to time authorise the continuance in office of that person until such date, not being later than the date on which he attains the age of sixty-five years, as he thinks fit.]
(4)A person appointed to an office [F359listed in column 1 of Part 1 or 2 of Schedule 2] shall hold that office during good behaviour.
(5)The power to remove such a person from his office on account of misbehaviour shall be exercisable by the Lord Chancellor [F360with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice].
(6)The Lord Chancellor may also [F361, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice,] remove such a person from his office on account of inability to perform the duties of his office.
(7)A person appointed to an office listed in column 1 of Part III of Schedule 2 shall hold that office during Her Majesty’s pleasure.
[F362(8)It is for the Lord Chancellor to recommend to Her Majesty the exercise of any power under subsection (7).]
Textual Amendments
F350Words in s. 92(1) inserted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 57(6), 148(5)
F351Words in s. 92(1) inserted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 14(2)(a) (with Sch. 7. paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F352Words in s. 92(1) substituted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 14(2)(b) (with Sch. 7. paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F353S. 92(2)–(2C) substituted for S. 92(2) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 77(1) (subject to a saving in Sch. 19 para. 7)
F354Words in s. 92(2) repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 89(1)(a), 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(v)(y)(aa)
F355Words in s. 92(2B) repealed (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 14(3), Sch.9 (with Sch. 7. paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F356S. 92(2C)(3) repealed (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26, Sch. 6 para. 14(4)(6), Sch.9 (with Sch. 7. paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F357S. 92(2D)(2E) repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 89(1)(b), 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(v)(y)(aa)
F359Words in s. 92(4) substituted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 89(1)(c), 110; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(v)
F360Words in s. 92(5) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 140(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(p)
F361Words in s. 92(6) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 140(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(p)
F362S. 92(8) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 140(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(p)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
(1)Subject to subsection (2), any person who holds an office listed in column 1 of any Part of Schedule 2 [F363or the office of Accountant General of the [F364Senior Courts]] and is not employed in the civil service of the State shall be deemed to be so employed for the purposes of salary and pension.
(2)Subsection (1), so far as it relates to pension, shall not apply to a person holding [F365qualifying judicial office, within the meaning of the M30Judicial Pensions and Retirement Act 1993.]
Textual Amendments
F363Words inserted by Public Trustee and Administration of Funds Act 1986 (c. 57, SIF 57), s. 1(3), Sch. para. 2
F364Words in s. 93 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F365Words in S. 93(2) substituted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 31, Sch. 8 para. 15(2); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
Marginal Citations
M301993 C. 8.
Textual Amendments
Any property held in his official capacity by a person holding an office listed in column 1 of Part II of Schedule 2 or by the Official Solicitor shall, on his dying or ceasing to hold office, vest in the person appointed to succeed him without any conveyance, assignment or transfer.
(1)The Central Office of the [F367Senior Courts] shall perform such business as the [F368Lord Chief Justice may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor,] direct.
(2)Subject to any direction [F369under subsection (1)], the Central Office shall perform such business as it performed immediately before the commencement of this Act.
[F370(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F367Words in s. 96 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F368Words in s. 96(1) substitued (3.4.2006) by virtue of Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 141(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F369Words in s. 96(2) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 141(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
F370S. 96(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 140(4); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(p)
(1)There shall continue to be an Accountant General of, and an accounting department for, the [F371Senior Courts].
[F372(2)The Lord Chancellor shall appoint such person as he thinks fit to the office in the [F371Senior Courts] of Accountant General of the [F371Senior Courts] and the person so appointed shall hold and vacate office in accordance with the terms of his appointment.
(3)The Accountant General shall be paid such salary or fees as the Lord Chancellor determines with the consent of the Treasury.
(4)If one person holds office both as the Accountant General and as the Public Trustee then, if he ceases to be the Public Trustee, he shall also cease to be the Accountant General unless the Lord Chancellor otherwise directs.
(5)If a vacancy occurs in the office of Accountant General or the person appointed to hold the office is for any reason unable to act for any period such person as the Lord Chancellor appoints as deputy in that office shall, during the vacancy or that period, perform the functions of that office (and any property vested in the Accountant General may accordingly be dealt with by the deputy in all respects as if it were vested in him instead).]
Textual Amendments
F371Words in s. 97 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F372S. 97(2)–(5) substituted for s. 97(2)(3) by Public Trustee and Administration of Funds Act 1986 (c. 57, SIF 57), s. 1(3), Sch. para. 3
(1)A clerk and a secretary shall be attached to each of the following judges of the [F373Senior Courts], namely the Lord Chief Justice, the Master of the Rolls, [F374the President of the Queen's Bench Division, the President of the Family Division and the Chancellor of the High Court].
(2)A clerk shall be attached to each of the following judges of the [F373Senior Courts], namely the Lords Justices of Appeal and the puisne judges of the High Court.
(3)Any clerk or secretary attached as mentioned in subsection (1) or (2)—
(a)shall be appointed by the Lord Chancellor; and
(b)if not already employed in the civil service of the State shall be deemed for all purposes to be so employed.
(4)If at any time it appears to any of the judges mentioned in subsection (1) desirable that there should be attached to him a legal secretary (that is to say a secretary with legal qualifications) in addition to the secretary provided for by that subsection, he may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, appoint a [F375person who has a general qualification (within the meaning of section 71 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990)] as his legal secretary.
(5)An appointment under subsection (4) may be on either a full-time or a part-time basis; and a person appointed by a judge as his legal secretary shall, except as regards remuneration, hold and vacate that office in accordance with such terms as the judge may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor, determine when making the appointment.
(6)A person appointed under subsection (4)—
(a)shall not be treated as employed in the civil service of the State by reason only of that appointment; and
(b)if the Lord Chancellor so determines in his case, shall be paid out of money provided by Parliament such remuneration as the Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Minister for the Civil Service, determine.
Textual Amendments
F373Words in s. 98 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F374Words in s. 98(1) substituted (1.10.2005) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 14(2); S.I. 2005/2505, art. 2(c)
F375Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 71(2), Sch. 10 para. 47
(1)The Lord Chancellor may [F376, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice,] by order direct that there shall be district registries of the High Court at such places and for such districts as are specified in the order.
(2)Any order under this section shall be made by statutory instrument, which shall be laid before Parliament after being made.
[F377(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F376Words in s. 99(1) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 143(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
F377S. 99(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 143(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
(1)The Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor—
(a)may assign a district judge to one or more district registries;
(b)may change an assignment so as to assign the district judge to a different district registry or registries (or to no district registry).
(2)A reference in any enactment or other instrument to the district judge of a district registry is a reference to any district judge assigned to the registry concerned.
(3)Every district judge is, by virtue of his office, capable of acting in any district registry whether or not assigned to it, but may do so only in accordance with arrangements made by or on behalf of the Lord Chief Justice.
(4)Whilst a district judge is assigned to one or more district registries in accordance with subsection (1) he is a district judge of the High Court.
[F379(5)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1).]]
Textual Amendments
F378S. 100 substituted (3.4.2006) for ss. 100, 101 by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 14, 148, Sch. 3 para. 2(1)(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 9
F379S. 100(5) inserted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 56, 148, Sch. 11 para. 2
[F383(1)If it appears to the Lord Chancellor that it is expedient to do so in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the High Court, he may appoint a person to be a deputy district judge.
(1A)A person is qualified for appointment under subsection (1) only if the person—
(a)is qualified for appointment as a district judge, or
(b)holds, or has held, the office of district judge.
(1B)The Lord Chancellor may not appoint a person under subsection (1) without the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice if the person—
(a)holds the office of district judge, or
(b)ceased to hold the office of district judge within two years ending with the date when the appointment takes effect.
(1C)Section 85 of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4) (selection of certain office holders) does not apply to an appointment to which subsection (1B) applies.]
(3)[F384No appointment to which subsection (1B) applies] shall be such as to extend beyond the day on which the person in question attains the age of seventy-five years.
[F385(4A)The Lord Chief Justice, after consulting the Lord Chancellor—
(a)may assign a deputy district judge appointed under this section to one or more district registries;
(b)may change an assignment so as to assign the deputy district judge to a different district registry or registries (or to no district registry).
(4B)A deputy district judge appointed under this section and assigned to a district registry has, while acting under his assignment, the same jurisdiction as a district judge assigned to that registry.
(4C)Every deputy district judge appointed under this section is, by virtue of his office, capable of acting as a district judge in any district registry to which he is not assigned, but may act in a district registry to which he is not assigned only in accordance with arrangements made by or on behalf of the Lord Chief Justice.]
[F386(5)Subsection (6) of section 91 applies in relation to a deputy district judge appointed under this section as it applies in relation to a person appointed under that section.]
[F387(5A)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under subsection (1B) or (4A).]
F388(6). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F383S. 102(1)-(1C) substituted (19.7.2007) for s. 102(1)(2) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 56, 148, Sch. 11 para. 3(2)
F384Words in s. 102(3) substituted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 56, 148, Sch. 11 para. 3(3)
F385S. 102(4A)-(4C) substituted (19.7.2007) for s. 102(4) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 56, 148, Sch. 11 para. 3(4) (with Sch. 11 para. 4)
F386S. 102(5) substituted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 31, Sch. 8 para. 15(3); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
F387S. 102(5A) inserted (19.7.2007) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 56, 148, Sch. 11 para. 3(5)
F388S. 102(6) repealed by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 76:1), s. 125(7), Sch. 20
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C45S. 102(1)(3) restricted (31.3.1995) by 1993 c. 8, s. 26(7)(g) (with Sch. 7. paras. 2(2), 3(2), 4); S.I. 1995/631, art.2.
Textual Amendments
(1)The Lord Chancellor may [F390, after consulting the Lord Chief Justice,] by order direct that there shall be district probate registries of the High Court at such places and for such districts as are specified in the order.
(2)Any order under this section shall be made by statutory instrument, which shall be laid before Parliament after being made.
[F391(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F390Words in s. 104(1) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 144(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
F391S. 104(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 144(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
Applications for grants of probate or administration and for the revocation of grants may be made to—
(a)the Principal Registry of the Family Division (in this Part referred to as “the Principal Registry”); or
(b)a district probate registry.
(1)Any grant made by a district probate registrar shall be made in the name of the High Court under the seal used in the registry.
F392(2)—(4). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
Subject to probate rules, no grant in respect of the estate, or part of the estate, of a deceased person shall be made out of the Principal Registry or any district probate registry on any application if, at any time before the making of a grant, it appears to the registrar concerned that some other application has been made in respect of that estate or, as the case may be, that part of it and has not been either refused or withdrawn.
(1)A caveat against a grant of probate or administration may be entered in the Principal Registry or in any district probate registry.
(2)On a caveat being entered in a district probate registry, the district probate registrar shall immediately send a copy of it to the Principal Registry to be entered among the caveats in that Registry.
[F393(1)No grant shall be made, and no grant made outside the United Kingdom shall be resealed, except—
(a)on the production of information or documents under regulations under section 256(1)(aa) of the Inheritance Tax Act 1984 (excepted estates); or
(b)on the production of an account prepared in pursuance of that Act showing by means of such receipt or certification as may be prescribed by the Commissioners either—
(i)that the inheritance tax payable on the delivery of the account has been paid; or
(ii)that no such tax is so payable.]
(2)Arrangements may be made between the President of the Family Division and the Commissioners providing for the purposes of [F394subsection (1)(b)] in such cases as may be specified in the arrangements that the receipt of certification of an account may be dispensed with or that some other document may be substituted for the account required by [F395the Capital Transfer Tax Act 1984].
[F396(2A)In this section and the following section, “the Commissioners” means the Commissioners of Inland Revenue]
(3)F397. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F393S. 109(1) substituted (1.11.2004) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), s. 294(1)(a)(4); S.I. 2004/2571, art. 2
F394Words in s. 109(2) substituted (1.11.2004) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), s. 294(1)(b)(4); S.I. 2004/2571, art. 2
F395Words substituted by Capital Transfer Tax Act 1984 (c. 51, SIF 65), s. 276, Sch. 8 para. 20(a)
F396S. 109(2A) inserted (1.11.2004) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), s. 294(1)(c)(4); S.I. 2004/2571, art. 2
F397S. 109(3) repealed (1.11.2004) by Finance Act 2004 (c. 12), ss. 294(1)(d)(4), 326, Sch. 42 Pt. 4 Note 1; S.I. 2004/2571, art. 2
Subject to any arrangements which may from time to time be made between the President of the Family Division and the Commissioners, the Principal Registry and every district probate registry shall, within such period after a grant as the President may direct, deliver to the Commissioners or their proper officer the following documents—
(a)in the case of a grant of probate or of administration with the will annexed, a copy of the will;
(b)in every case, such certificate or note of the grant as the Commissioners may require.
(1)There shall continue to be kept records of all grants which are made in the Principal Registry or in any district probate registry.
(2)Those records shall be in such form, and shall contain such particulars, as the President of the Family Division may direct.
The High Court may summon any person named as executor in a will to prove, or renounce probate of, the will, and to do such other things concerning the will as the court had power to order such a person to do immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(1)Subject to subsection (2), the High Court may grant probate or administration in respect of any part of the estate of a deceased person, limited in any way the court thinks fit.
(2)Where the estate of a deceased person is known to be insolvent, the grant of representation to it shall not be severed under subsection (1) except as regards a trust estate in which he had no beneficial interest.
(1)Probate or administration shall not be granted by the High Court to more than four persons in respect of the same part of the estate of a deceased person.
(2)Where under a will or intestacy any beneficiary is a minor or a life interest arises, any grant of administration by the High Court shall be made either to a trust corporation (with or without an individual) or to not less than two individuals, unless it appears to the court to be expedient in all the circumstances to appoint an individual as sole administrator.
(3)For the purpose of determining whether a minority or life interest arises in any particular case, the court may act on such evidence as may be prescribed.
(4)If at any time during the minority of a beneficiary or the subsistence of a life interest under a will or intestacy there is only one personal representative (not being a trust corporation), the High Court may, on the application of any person interested or the guardian or receiver of any such person, and in accordance with probate rules, appoint one or more additional personal representatives to act while the minority or life interest subsists and until the estate is fully administered.
(5)An appointment of an additional personal representative under subsection (4) to act with an executor shall not have the effect of including him in any chain of representation.
(1)The High Court may—
(a)where a trust corporation is named in a will as executor, grant probate to the corporation either solely or jointly with any other person named in the will as executor, as the case may require; or
(b)grant administration to a trust corporation, either solely or jointly with another person;
and the corporation may act accordingly as executor or administrator, as the case may be.
(2)Probate or administration shall not be granted to any person as nominee of a trust corporation.
(3)Any officer authorised for the purpose by a trust corporation or its directors or governing body may, on behalf of the corporation, swear affidavits, give security and do any other act which the court may require with a view to the grant to the corporation of probate or administration; and the acts of an officer so authorised shall be binding on the corporation.
[F398(4)Subsections (1) to (3) shall also apply in relation to any body which is exempt from the provisions of section 23(1) of the Solicitors Act 1974 (unqualified persons not to prepare papers for probate etc.) by virtue of any of paragraphs (e) to (h) of subsection (2) of that section.]
Textual Amendments
F398S. 115(4) added (prosp.) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 76:1), ss. 54(2), 59(1)
(1)If by reason of any special circumstances it appears to the High Court to be necessary or expedient to appoint as administrator some person other than the person who, but for this section, would in accordance with probate rules have been entitled to the grant, the court may in its discretion appoint as administrator such person as it thinks expedient.
(2)Any grant of administration under this section may be limited in any way the court thinks fit.
(1)Where any legal proceedings concerning the validity of the will of a deceased person, or for obtaining, recalling or revoking any grant, are pending, the High Court may grant administration of the estate of the deceased person in question to an administrator pending suit, who shall, subject to subsection (2), have all the rights, duties and powers of a general administrator.
(2)An administrator pending suit shall be subject to the immediate control of the court and act under its direction; and, except in such circumstances as may be prescribed, no distribution of the estate, or any part of the estate, of the deceased person in question shall be made by such an administrator without the leave of the court.
(3)The court may, out of the estate of the deceased, assign an administrator pending suit such reasonable remuneration as it thinks fit.
Where a testator by his will appoints a minor to be an executor, the appointment shall not operate to vest in the minor the estate, or any part of the estate, of the testator, or to constitute him a personal representative for any purpose, unless and until probate is granted to him in accordance with probate rules.
(1)Administration with the will annexed shall be granted, subject to and in accordance with probate rules, in every class of case in which the High Court had power to make such a grant immediately before the commencement of this Act.
(2)Where administration with the will annexed is granted, the will of the deceased shall be performed and observed in the same manner as if probate of it had been granted to an executor.
(1)As a condition of granting administration to any person the High Court may, subject to the following provisions of this section and subject to and in accordance with probate rules, require one or more sureties to guarantee that they will make good, within any limit imposed by the court on the total liability of the surety or sureties, any loss which any person interested in the administration of the estate of the deceased may suffer in consequence of a breach by the administrator of his duties as such.
(2)A guarantee given in pursuance of any such requirement shall enure for the benefit of every person interested in the administration of the estate of the deceased as if contained in a contract under seal made by the surety or sureties with every such person and, where there are two or more sureties, as if they had bound themselves jointly and severally.
(3)No action shall be brought on any such guarantee without the leave of the High Court.
(4)Stamp duty shall not be chargeable on any such guarantee.
(5)This section does not apply where administration is granted to the Treasury Solicitor, the Official Solicitor, the Public Trustee, the Solicitor for the affairs of the Duchy of Lancaster or the Duchy of Cornwall or the Crown Solicitor for Northern Ireland, or to the consular officer of a foreign state to which section 1 of the M31Consular Conventions Act 1949 applies, or in such other cases as may be prescribed.
Marginal Citations
(1)Where it appears to the High Court that a grant either ought not to have been made or contains an error, the court may call in the grant and, if satisfied that it would be revoked at the instance of a party interested, may revoke it.
(2)A grant may be revoked under subsection (1) without being called in, if it cannot be called in.
(3)Where it appears to the High Court that a grant resealed under the Colonial Probates Acts 1892 and 1927 ought not to have been resealed, the court may call in the relevant document and, if satisfied that the resealing would be cancelled at the instance of a party interested, may cancel the resealing.
In this and the following subsection “the relevant document” means the original grant or, where some other document was sealed by the court under those Acts, that document.
(4)A resealing may be cancelled under subsection (3) without the relevant document being called in, if it cannot be called in.
(1)Where it appears that there are reasonable grounds for believing that any person has knowledge of any document which is or purports to be a testamentary document, the High Court may, whether or not any legal proceedings are pending, order him to attend for the purpose of being examined in open court.
(2)The court may—
(a)require any person who is before it in compliance with an order under subsection (1) to answer any question relating to the document concerned; and
(b)if appropriate, order him to bring in the document in such manner as the court may direct.
(3)Any person who, having been required by the court to do so under this section, fails to attend for examination, answer any question or bring in any document shall be guilty of contempt of court.
Where it appears that any person has in his possession, custody or power any document which is or purports to be a testamentary document, the High Court may, whether or not any legal proceedings are pending, issue a subpoena requiring him to bring in the document in such manner as the court may in the subpoena direct.
All original wills and other documents which are under the control of the High Court in the Principal Registry or in any district probate registry shall be deposited and preserved in such places [F399as may be provided for in directions given in accordance with Part 1 of Schedule 2 to the Constitutional Reform Act 2005]; and any wills or other documents so deposited shall, subject to the control of the High Court and to probate rules, be open to inspection.
Textual Amendments
F399Words in s. 124 substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 13, 148, Sch. 2 para. 5; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 7
An office copy, or a sealed and certified copy, of any will or part of a will open to inspection under section 124 or of any grant may, on payment of [F400the fee prescribed by an order under section 92 of the Courts Act 2003 (fees)], be obtained—
(a)from the registry in which in accordance with section 124 the will or documents relating to the grant are preserved; or
(b)where in accordance with that section the will or such documents are preserved in some place other than a registry, from the Principal Registry; or
(c)subject to the approval of the Senior Registrar of the Family Division, from the Principal Registry in any case where the will was proved in or the grant was issued from a district probate registry.
Textual Amendments
F400Words in s. 125 substituted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1), 110, Sch. 8 para. 262; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)
(1)There shall be provided, under the control and direction of the High Court, safe and convenient depositories for the custody of the wills of living persons; and any person may deposit his will in such a depository on payment of [F401the fee prescribed by an order under section 92 of the Courts Act 2003 (fees)] and subject to such conditions as may be prescribed by regulations made by the President of the Family Division with the concurrence of the Lord Chancellor.
(2)Any regulations made under this section shall be made by statutory instrument which shall be laid before Parliament after being made; and the M32Statutory Instruments Act 1946 shall apply to a statutory instrument containing regulations under this section in like manner as if they had been made by a Minister of the Crown.
Textual Amendments
F401Words in s. 126(1) substituted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1), 110, Sch. 8 para. 262; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)
Marginal Citations
(1)[F402 Rules of court (in this Part referred to as “probate rules”) may be made in accordance with Part 1 of Schedule 1 to the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 for regulating] and prescribing the practice and procedure of the High Court with respect to non-contentious or common form probate business.
(2)Without prejudice to the generality of subsection (1), probate rules may make provision for regulating the classes of persons entitled to grants of probate or administration in particular circumstances and the relative priorities of their claims thereto.
(3)F403. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F402Words in s. 127(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 12, 148, Sch. 1 para. 12(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 7
F403S. 127(3) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 12, 146, 148, Sch. 1 para. 12(3), Sch. 18 Pt. 1; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 7, 30(a)
In this part, and in the other provisions of this Act relating to probate causes and matters, unless the context otherwise requires—
“administration” includes all letters of administration of the effects of deceased persons, whether with or without a will annexed, and whether granted for general, special or limited purposes;
“estate” means real and personal estate, and “real estate” includes—
chattels real and land in possession, remainder or reversion and every interest in or over land to which the deceased person was entitled at the time of his death, and
real estate held on trust or by way of mortgage or security, but not F404. . . money secured or charged on land;
“grant” means a grant of probate or administration;
“non-contentious or common form probate business” means the business of obtaining probate and administration where there is no contention as to the right thereto, including—
the passing of probates and administrations through the High Court in contentious cases where the contest has been terminated,
all business of a non-contentious nature in matters of testacy and intestacy not being proceedings in any action, and
the business of lodging caveats against the grant of probate or administration;
“Principal Registry” means the Principal Registry of the Family Division;
“probate rules” means rules of court made under section 127;
“trust corporation” means the Public Trustee or a corporation either appointed by the court in any particular case to be a trustee or authorised by rules made under section 4(3) of the M33Public Trustee Act 1906 to act as a custodian trustee;
“will” includes a nuncupative will and any testamentary document of which probate may be granted.
Textual Amendments
F404S. 128: words in para. (b) in the definition of “real estate” repealed (1.1.1997) by 1996 c. 47, s. 25(2), Sch.4 (with ss. 24(2), 25(4)); S.I. 1996/2974, art.2
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C46S. 128: definition of "non-contentious or common form probate business" applied (1.7.1991) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1991 (c. 41, SIF 76:1), s. 56(5); S.I. 1991/1364, art. 2, Sch
C47S. 128: definition of "trust corporation" amended (retrospectively) by Charities Act 1960 (c. 58), s. 21A(e) (as inserted and modified (1.9.1992) by Charities Act 1992 (c. 41), s. 14(1)(2); S.I. 1992/1900, art. 2(1), Sch. 1)
S. 128: definition of "trust corporation" extended (retrospectively) by 1993 c. 10, ss. 35(1)(e)(2)
C48S. 128 extended (retrospectively) by Charities Act 2011 (c. 25), Sch. 7 para. 3(1)(2)(e)(3) (with s. 20(2), Sch. 7 para. 3(4), Sch. 8)
C49S. 128 modified by 2010 c. 32, s. 12(1A)(1B) (as inserted (1.2.2012) by Education Act 2011 (c. 21), s. 82(3), Sch. 14 para. 20(2); S.I. 2012/84, art. 3 (with art. 5))
Marginal Citations
When the Great Seal is in commission, the Lords Commissioners shall represent the Lord Chancellor for the purposes of this Act; but the powers vested in him by this Act in relation to—
(a)the appointment of officers, and
(b)any act for which the concurrence or presence of the Lord Chancellor is required by this Act,
may be exercised by the senior Lord Commissioner for the time being.
F405. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F405S. 130 repealed (4.1.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1)(3), 110, Sch. 8 para. 263, Sch. 10; S.I. 2004/3123, art. 2(c)(i) (with art. 3) and s. 130(2)(a) amended (3.4.2006) by the Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 378 (with Sch. 4 para. 361); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(cc)
(1)The conveyancing counsel of the [F406Senior Courts] shall be [F407persons who have a 10 year High Court qualification, within the meaning of section 71 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990.]
(2)The conveyancing counsel of the court shall be not more than six, not less than three, in number, and shall be appointed by the Lord Chancellor [F408with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice].
[F409(3)The Lord Chief Justice may nominate a judicial office holder (as defined in section 109(4) of the Constitutional Reform Act 2005) to exercise his functions under this section.]
Textual Amendments
F406Words in s. 131 and sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F407Words substituted by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 71(2), Sch. 10 para. 48
F408Words in s. 131(2) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 145(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
F409S. 131(3) inserted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 145(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 11(q)
Every document purporting to be sealed or stamped with the seal or stamp of the [F410Senior Courts] or of any office of the [F410Senior Courts] shall be received in evidence in all parts of the United Kingdom without further proof.
Textual Amendments
F410Words in s. 132 and sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
(1)The Master of the Rolls may make regulations for authorising and regulating the enrolment or filing of instruments in the [F411Senior Courts], and for prescribing the form in which certificates of enrolment or filing are to be issued.
(2)Regulations under subsection (1) shall not affect the operation of any enactment requiring or authorising the enrolment of any instrument in the [F411Senior Courts] or prescribing the manner in which any instrument is to be enrolled there.
(3)Any instrument which is required or authorised by or under this or any other Act to be enrolled or engrossed in the [F411Senior Courts] shall be deemed to have been duly enrolled or engrossed if it is written on material authorised or required by regulations under subsection (1) and has been filed or otherwise preserved in accordance with regulations under that subsection.
(4)The Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Master of the Rolls and of the Treasury, make regulations prescribing the fees to be paid on the enrolment or filing of any instrument in the [F411Senior Courts], including any additional fees payable on the enrolment or filing of any instrument out of time.
(5)Any regulations under this section shall be made by statutory instrument, which shall be laid before Parliament after being made; and the M34Statutory Instruments Act 1946 shall apply to a statutory instrument containing regulations under subsection (1) in like manner as if the regulations had been made by a Minister of the Crown.
Textual Amendments
F411Words in s. 133 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Marginal Citations
(1)This section applies to any instrument creating, or verifying the execution of, a power of attorney which was deposited in the Central Office of the [F412Senior Courts] before 1st October 1971.
(2)A separate file of such instruments shall continue to be kept and, subject to payment of any [F413the fee prescribed by an order under section 92 of the Courts Act 2003 (fees)]—
(a)any person may search that file, and may inspect any such instrument; and
(b)an office copy of any such instrument shall be issued to any person on request.
(3)A document purporting to be an office copy of any such instrument shall, in any part of the United Kingdom, without further proof be sufficient evidence of the contents of the instrument and of its having been deposited as mentioned in subsection (1).
Textual Amendments
F412Words in s. 134 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F413Words in s. 134(2) substituted (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1), 110, Sch. 8 para. 262; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)
(1)A bond to be given by any person under or for the purposes of any order of the High Court or the civil division of the Court of Appeal shall be given in such form and to such officer of the court as may be prescribed and, if the court so requires, with one or more sureties.
(2)An officer of the court to whom a bond is given in accordance with subsection (1) shall as such have power to enforce it or to assign it, pursuant to an order of the court under subsection (4), to some other person.
(3)Where by rules of court made for the purposes of this section another officer is at any time substituted for the officer previously prescribed as the officer to whom bonds of any class are to be given, the rules may provide that bonds of that class given before the rules come into operation shall have effect as if references in the bonds to the officer previously prescribed were references to the substituted officer.
(4)Where it appears to the court that the condition of a bond given in accordance with subsection (1) has been broken, the court may, on an application in that behalf, order the bond to be assigned to such person as may be specified in the order.
(5)A person to whom a bond is ordered to be assigned under subsection (4) shall be entitled by virtue of the order to sue on the bond in his own name as if it had been originally given to him, and to recover on it as trustee for all persons interested the full amount recoverable in respect of the breach of condition.
(1)[F415Rules may be made in accordance with Part 1 of Schedule 1 to the Constitutional Reform Act 2005] for providing that, in any case where a document filed in, or in the custody of, any office of the [F414Senior Courts] is required to be produced to any court or tribunal (including an umpire or arbitrator) sitting elsewhere than at the Royal Courts of Justice—
(a)it shall not be necessary for any officer, whether served with a subpoena in that behalf or not, to attend for the purpose of producing the document; but
(b)the document may be produced to the court or tribunal by sending it to the court or tribunal, in the manner prescribed in the rules, together with a certificate, in the form so prescribed, to the effect that the document has been filed in, or is in the custody of, the office;
and any such certificate shall be prima facie evidence of the facts stated in it.
(2)Rules under this section may contain—
(a)provisions for securing the safe custody and return to the proper office of the [F414Senior Courts] of any document sent to a court or tribunal in pursuance of the rules; and
(b)such incidental and supplementary provisions as appear to the [F416person making the rules] to be necessary or expedient.
(3)F417. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F414Words in s. 136 and sidenote substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F415Words in s. 136(1) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 12, 148, Sch. 1 para. 13(2); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 7
F416Words in s. 136(2)(b) substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 12, 148, Sch. 1 para. 13(3); S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 para. 7
F417S. 136(3) repealed (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 12, 146, 148, Sch. 1 para. 13(3), Sch. 18 Pt. 1; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 7, 30(a)
Where in pursuance of any enactment, whenever passed, any money has (before or after the commencement of this Act) been paid—
(a)into the Bank of England in the name of the Accountant General of the [F418Senior Courts]; or
(b)into the [F418Senior Courts],
then, if that enactment has been or is subsequently repealed—
(i)the Accountant General may continue to deal with the money; and
(ii)any powers of the High Court with respect to the money shall continue to be exercisable,
in all respects as if that enactment had not been repealed.
Textual Amendments
F418Words in s. 137 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F419. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F419S. 138 repealed (15.3.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1)(3), 110, Sch. 8 para. 264, Sch. 10; S.I. 2004/401, art. 2(b) (with art. 3)
F420. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F420S. 138A repealed (15.3.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1)(3), 110, Sch. 8 para. 264, Sch. 10; S.I. 2004/401, art. 2(b) (with art. 3)
F421. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F421S. 138B repealed (15.3.2004) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1)(3), 110, Sch. 8 para. 264, Sch. 10; S.I. 2004/401, art. 2(b) (with art. 3)
X1(1)In section 27 of the M35Crown Proceedings Act 1947 (attachment of moneys payable by the Crown)—
(a)in subsection (1), paragraph (c) of the proviso (which precludes the making of orders under that subsection by the High Court or a county court in respect of money payable on account of a deposit in the National Savings Bank) shall cease to have effect; and
(b)after subsection (2) there shall be added—
“(3)In their application to England and Wales the preceding provisions of this section shall have effect subject to any order for the time being in force under section 139(2) of the Supreme Court Act 1981.”.
(2)The Lord Chancellor may by order direct that section 27(1) and (2) of the M36Crown Proceedings Act 1947 (attachment of moneys payable by the Crown) shall not apply in relation to any money payable by the Crown to any person on account of—
(a)any deposit in the National Savings Bank; or
(b)a deposit in that Bank of any description specified in the order.
(3)Any order under subsection (2) shall be made by statutory instrument subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of either House of Parliament.
(4)Without prejudice to section 153(4), this section extends to England and Wales only.
Editorial Information
X1The text of ss. 139(1), 145–148 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutesin Force and does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Marginal Citations
(1)Payment of a fine imposed, or sum due under a recognizance forfeited, by the High Court or the civil division of the Court of Appeal may be enforced upon the order of the court—
(a)in like manner as a judgment of the High Court for the payment of money; or
(b)in like manner as a fine imposed by the Crown Court.
(2)Where payment of a fine or other sum falls to be enforced as mentioned in paragraph (a) of subsection (1) upon an order of the High Court or the civil division of the Court of Appeal under that subsection—
(a)the court shall, if the fine or the other sum is not paid in full forthwith or within such time as the court may allow, certify to Her Majesty’s Remembrancer the sum payable; and
(b)Her Majesty’s Remembrancer shall thereupon proceed to enforce payment of that sum as if it were due to him as a judgment debt.
(3)Where payment of a fine or other sum falls to be enforced as mentioned in paragaph (b) of subsection (1) upon an order of the High Court or the civil division of the Court of Appeal under that subsection, the provisions of [F422sections 139 and 140 of the Powers of Criminal Courts (Sentencing) Act 2000] shall apply to that fine or other sum as they apply to a fine imposed by the Crown Court.
(4)Where payment of a fine or other sum has become enforceable by Her Majesty’s Remembrancer by virtue of this section or section 16 of the M37Contempt of Court Act 1981, any payment received by him in respect of that fine or other sum shall be dealt with by him in such manner as the Lord Chancellor may direct.
(5)In this section, and in [F422sections 139 and 140 of the Powers of Criminal Courts (Sentencing) Act 2000] as extended by this section, “fine” includes a penalty imposed in civil proceedings.
Textual Amendments
F422Words in s. 140(3)(5) substituted (28.8.2000) by 2000 c. 6, ss. 165(1), 168(1), Sch. 9 para. 88
Marginal Citations
F423. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F423S. 141 repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
(1)The judges to be placed on the rota for the trial of parliamentary election petitions in England and Wales under Part III of the [F424Representation of the People Act 1983] in each year shall be selected, in such manner as may be provided by rules of court, from the judges of the Queen’s Bench Division of the High Court exclusive of any who are members of the House of Lords.
(2)Notwithstanding the expiry of the year for which a judge has been placed on the rota he may act as if that year had not expired for the purpose of continuing to deal with, giving judgment in, or dealing with ancillary matter relating to, any case with which he may have been concerned during that year.
(3)Any judge placed on the rota shall be eligible to be placed on the rota again in the succeeding or any subsequent year.
Textual Amendments
F424Words substituted by Representation of the People Act 1983 (c. 2, SIF 42), s. 206(b)(i), Sch. 8 para. 26
Textual Amendments
Textual Amendments
F426S. 144 repealed by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 20, SIF 85), s. 148(3), Sch. 6
(1)The M38Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 shall be amended as follows.
(2)In section 2(1)(a) (under which the judges of the Courts-Martial Appeal Court include such judges of the Queen’s Bench Division of the High Court as may be nominated for that purpose by the Lord Chief Justice after consultation with the Master of the Rolls), the words “of the Queen’s Bench Division” and “after consultation with the Master of the Rolls” shall be omitted.
(3)In section 3(a) (under which the powers of the Courts-Martial Appeal Court may be exercised by any judge of the Queen’s Bench Division of the High Court), the words “of the Queen’s Bench Division” shall be omitted.
(4)For section 5 (constitution of Appeal Court for particular sittings) there shall be substituted—
“5(1)Subject to subsection (4) below, the Appeal Court shall be duly constituted if it consists of an uneven number of judges not less than three.
(2)Where—
(a)part of any proceedings before the Appeal Court has been heard by an uneven number of judges greater than three; and
(b)one or more members of the Court as constituted for the purpose of those proceedings are unable to continue,
then, subject to subsection (4) below, the Court shall remain duly constituted for the purpose of those proceedings so long as the number of members (whether even or uneven) is not reduced to less than three.
(3)Subject to subsection (4) below, the Appeal Court shall, if it consists of two judges, be duly constituted for every purpose except—
(a)determining an appeal against—
(i)conviction; or
(ii)a finding of not guilty by reason of insanity; or
(iii)a finding of unfitness to stand trial;
(b)determining an application for leave to appeal to the House of Lords; and
(c)refusing an application for leave to appeal to the Appeal Court against conviction or any such finding as is mentioned in paragraph (a)(ii) or (iii), other than an application which has been refused by a single judge.
(4)At least one of the judges of which the Appeal Court consists at any sitting must be a judge of the Court by virtue of section 2(1) of this Act, except that where the Court is directed to sit at a place outside the United Kingdom the Lord Chancellor may, if he thinks it expedient to do so, direct that this provision shall not apply to the Court while sitting at that place.
(5)Where an appeal has been heard by the Appeal Court and the Court as constituted for that purpose consists of an even number of judges, then, if those judges are equally divided, the case shall be re-argued before and determined by an uneven number of judges not less than three.”.
(5)In section 36(2) (rights of appellant on refusal of single judge to exercise certain powers in his favour) for “for the hearing and determination of appeals” there shall be substituted “for the purpose in accordance with section 5 of this Act”.
Editorial Information
X2The text of ss. 139(1), 145–148 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutesin Force and does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Marginal Citations
For section 24 of the M39Courts Act 1971 (deputy High Court and Circuit judges) there shall be substituted—
(1)If it appears to the Lord Chancellor that it is expedient as a temporary measure to make an appointment under this section in order to facilitate the disposal of business in the Crown Court or a county court or official referees’ business in the High Court, he may—
(a)appoint to be a deputy Circuit judge, during such period or on such occasions as he thinks fit, any person who has held office as a judge of the Court of Appeal or of the High Court or as a Circuit judge; or
(b)appoint to be an assistant Recorder, during such period or on such occasions as he thinks fit, any barrister or solicitor of at least ten years’ standing.
(2)Except as provided by subsection (3) below, during the period or on the occasions for which a deputy Circuit judge or assistant Recorder is appointed under this section he shall be treated for all purposes as, and accordingly may perform any of the functions of, a Circuit judge or a Recorder, as the case may be.
(3)A deputy Circuit judge appointed under this section shall not be treated as a Circuit judge for the purpose of any provision made by or under any enactment and relating to the appointment, retirement, removal or disqualification of Circuit judges, the tenure of office and oaths to be taken by such judges, or the remuneration, allowances or pensions of such judges; and section 21 of this Act shall not apply to an assistant Recorder appointed under this section.
(4)Notwithstanding the expiry of any period for which a person is appointed under this section a deputy Circuit judge or an assistant Recorder, he may attend at the Crown Court or a county court or, as regards any official referees’ business, at the High Court for the purpose of continuing to deal with, giving judgment in, or dealing with any ancillary matter relating to, any case which may have been begun before him when sitting as a deputy Circuit judge or an assistant Recorder, and for that purpose and for the purpose of any proceedings subsequent thereon he shall be treated as a Circuit judge or a Recorder, as the case may be.
(5)There shall be paid out of money provided by Parliament to deputy Circuit judges and assistant Recorders appointed under this section such remuneration and allowances as the Lord Chancellor may, with the approval of the Minister for the Civil Service, determine.”.
Editorial Information
X3The text of ss. 139(1), 145–148 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutesin Force and does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Marginal Citations
In section 50 of the M40Solicitors Act 1974 (jurisdiction of [F427Senior Courts] over solicitors), after subsection (2) there shall be inserted—
“(3)An appeal shall lie to the Court of Appeal from any order made against a solicitor by the High Court or the Crown Court in the exercise of its jurisdiction in respect of solicitors under subsection (2).”.
Editorial Information
X4The text of ss. 139(1), 145–148 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutesin Force and does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Textual Amendments
F427Words in s. 147 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Marginal Citations
Textual Amendments
F428S. 148 repealed (31.1.1997) by 1996 c. 23, s. 107(2), Sch. 4 (with s. 81(2); S.I. 1996/3146, art. 3 (with Sch. 2 para. 1)
Textual Amendments
F429S. 149 repealed by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
(1)Her Majesty may by Order in Council—
(a)direct that any of the provisions of sections 20 to 24 specified in the Order shall extend, with such exceptions, adaptations and modifications as may be so specified, to any of the Channel Islands or the Isle of Man; or
(b)make, for any of the Channel Islands or the Isle of Man, provision for any purposes corresponding to the purposes of any of the provisions of those sections.
(2)Her Majesty may by order in Council direct, either generally or in relation to particular courts or territories, that the M41Colonial Courts of Admiralty Act 1890 shall have effect as if for the reference in section 2(2) of that Act to the Admiralty jurisdiction of the High Court in England there were substituted a reference to the Admiralty jurisdiction of that court as defined by section 20 of this Act, subject, however to such adaptations and modifications of section 20 as may be specified in the Order.
(3)Her Majesty may by Order in Council direct that any of the provisions of sections 21 to 24 shall extend, with such exceptions, adaptations and modifications as may be specified in the Order, to any colony or to any country outside Her Majesty’s dominions in which Her Majesty has jurisdiction in right of the government of the United Kingdom.
(4)Subsections (1) and (3) shall each have effect as if the provisions there mentioned included section 2(2) of the M42Hovercraft Act 1968 (application of the law relating to maritime liens in relation to hovercraft and property connected with them).
(1)In this Act, unless the context otherwise requires—
“action” means any civil proceedings commenced by writ or in any other manner prescribed by rules of court;
“appeal”, in the context of appeals to the civil division of the Court of Appeal, includes—
an application for a new trial, and
an application to set aside a verdict, finding or judgment in any cause or matter in the High Court which has been tried, or in which any issue has been tried, by a jury;
[F430“arbitration agreement” has the same meaning as it has in the [F431Part I of the Arbitration Act 1996;]]
“cause” means any action or any criminal proceedings;
“Division”, where it appears with a capital letter, means a division of the High Court;
“judgment” includes a decree;
“jurisdiction” includes powers;
“matter” means any proceedings in court not in a cause;
“party”, in relation to any proceedings, includes any person who pursuant to or by virtue of rules of court or any other statutory provision has been served with notice of, or has intervened in, those proceedings;
“prescribed” means—
[F433“qualifying judge advocate” means—
the Judge Advocate General; or
a person appointed under section 30(1)(a) or (b) of the Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1951 (assistants to the Judge Advocate General);]
[F434“senior judge”, where the reference is to the senior judge of a Division, means the president of that Division;]
“solicitor” means a solicitor of the [F435Senior Courts];
“statutory provision” means any enactment, whenever passed, or any provision contained in subordinate legislation (as defined 0 in section 21(1) of the M43Interpretation Act 1978), whenever made;
“this or any other Act” includes an Act passed after this Act.
(2)Section 128 contains definitions of expressions used in Part V and in the other provisions of this Act relating to probate causes and matters.
(3)Any reference in this Act to rules of court under section 84 includes a reference to rules of court under any provision of this or any other Act which confers on the [F436Civil Procedure Rule Committee] or the Crown Court Rule Committee power to make rules of court [F437in relation to the [F435Senior Courts]].
(4)Except where the context otherwise requires, in this or any other Act—
F438. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
F439. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
“divisional court” (with or without capital letters) means a divisional court constituted under section 66;
“judge of the [F435Senior Courts]” means—
a judge of the Court of Appeal other than an ex-officio judge within paragraph (b) or (c) of section 2(2), or
a judge of the High Court,
and accordingly does not include, as such, a judge of the Crown Court;
“official referees’ business” has the meaning given by section 68(6);
[F440 “Rules of the [F435Senior Courts]” means rules of court made by the [F435Senior Courts] Rules Committee.]
(5)The provisions of Schedule 4 (construction of references to superseded courts and officers) shall have effect.
Extent Information
E2S. 151: for extent of s. 151(1), see s. 135(5); s. 151(2) -(5) extends to E.W. only
Textual Amendments
F430Definition of "arbitration agreement" inserted (1.4.1991) by Courts and Legal Services Act 1990 (c. 41, SIF 37), s. 125(3), Sch. 18 para. 41.; S.I. 1991/608, art. 2, Sch.
F431Words in definition of “arbitration agreement” in s. 151 substituted (31.1.1997) by 1996 c. 23, s. 107(2), Sch. 3 para. 37(3) (with s. 81(2)); S.I. 1996/3146, art. 3 (with Sch. 2 para. 1)
F432S. 151(1): para. (b) and preceding word in definition of "prescribed" repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(1)(3), 110, Sch. 8 para. 265, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(y)(aa)
F433Words in s. 151(1) inserted (2.4.2012) by Armed Forces Act 2011 (c. 18), s. 32(3), Sch. 2 para. 5; S.I. 2012/669, art. 4(c)
F434S. 151(1): definition of "senior judge" substituted (3.4.2006) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 15, 148, Sch. 4 para. 146; S.I. 2006/1014, art. 2(a), Sch. 1 paras. 10, 11(q)
F435Words in s. 151 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1)(2); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(b)(d)
F436Words in s. 151(3) substituted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(7)(a); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(e)
F437Words in s. 151(3) inserted (26.4.1999) by 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(7)(a); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(e)
F438S. 151(4): definition of "Criminal Appeal Rules" repealed (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 18 (with art. 2(2))
F439S. 151(4): definition of "Crown Court Rules" repealed (1.9.2004) by The Courts Act 2003 (Consequential Amendments) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/2035), art. 3, Sch. para. 18 (with art. 2(2))
F440Definition of “Rules of the Supreme Court” in s. 151(4) omitted (26.4.1999) by virtue of 1997 c. 12, s. 10, Sch. 2 para. 1(7)(b); S.I. 1999/1009, art. 3(e)
Marginal Citations
X5(1)The enactments specified in Schedule 5 shall have effect subject to the amendments there specified, being amendments consequential on the provisions of this Act.
(2)F441. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
(3)This Act shall have effect subject to the transitional provisions and savings contained in Schedule 6.
X5(4)The enactments mentioned in Schedule 7 (which include certain obsolete or unnecessary provisions) are hereby repealed to the extent specified in the third column of that Schedule.
(5)F442. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Editorial Information
X5The text of s. 152(1)(4)(5), Sch. 5 and Sch. 7 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutes in Force and, except as specified, does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Textual Amendments
F441S. 152(2) repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
F442S. 152(5) repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
(1)This Act may be cited as the [F443Senior Courts] Act 1981.
(2)This Act, except the provisions mentioned in subsection (3), shall come into force on 1st January 1982; and references to the commencement of this Act shall be construed as references to the beginning of that day.
(3)Sections 72, 143 and 152(2) and this section shall come into force on the passing of this Act.
(4)In this Act—
(a)the following provisions extend to Scotland, namely—
section 80(3);
section 152(4) and Schedule 7, so far as they relate to the M44Admiralty Court Act 1861;
(b)the following provisions extend to Northern Ireland so far as they relate to the M45Northern Ireland Assembly Disqualification Act 1975, namely—
section 152(1) and Schedule 5;
section 152(3) and paragraph 3(1) of Schedule 6;
(c)the following provisions extend to Scotland and Northern Ireland, namely—
section 36;
sections 132 and 134(3);
section 152(1) and Schedule 5, so far as they amend—
section 152(3) and paragraph 3(1) of Schedule 6, so far as they relate to the House of Commons Disqualification Act 1975;
section 152(4) and Schedule 7, so far as they relate to—
(d)section 145 extends to any place to which the M52Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968 extends, and section 152(1) and (4) and Schedules 5 and 7, so far as they relate to any of the following enactments, namely—
M53Army Act 1955,
M54Air Force Act 1955,
section 9(2) of, and Part II of Schedule 1 to, the M55Criminal Appeal Act 1966,
Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968,
M56Hovercraft Act 1968,
F444. . .
extend to any place to which that enactment extends;
but, save as aforesaid, the provisions of this Act, other than those mentioned in subsection (5), extend to England and Wales only.
(5)The provisions of this Act whose extent is not restricted by subsection (4) are—
section 27;
section 150;
section 151(1);
section 152(4) and Schedule 7 as far as they relate to the M57Naval Prize Act 1864, the M58Prize Courts Act 1915 and section 56 of the M59Administration of Justice Act 1956;
this section;
paragraph 1 of Schedule 4.
Textual Amendments
F443Words in s. 153 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
F444Words in s. 153(4)(d) repealed (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(1), 316(2), Sch.12 (with ss. 312(1), Sch. 14 para. 1)
Marginal Citations
1E+WTo the Chancery Division are assigned all causes and matters relating to—
(a)the sale, exchange or partition of land, or the raising of charges on land;
(b)the redemption or foreclosure of mortgages;
(c)the execution of trusts;
(d)the administration of the estates of deceased persons;
(e)bankruptcy;
(f)the dissolution of partnerships or the taking of partnership or other accounts;
(g)the rectification, setting aside or cancellation of deeds or other instruments in writing;
(h)probate business, other than non-contentious or common form business;
(i)patents, trade marks, registered designs [F445, copyright or design right];
(j)the appointment of a guardian of a minor’s estate,
and all causes and matters involving the exercise of the High Court’s jurisdiction under the enactments relating to companies.
Textual Amendments
F445Words substituted by Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988 (c. 48, SIF 67A), s. 30(1), Sch. 7 para. 28(1)(3)
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C50Sch. 1 para. 1 extended by Patents, Designs and Marks Act 1986 (c. 39, SIF 67A), s. 2(3), Sch. 2 Pt. I para. 1(2)(i)
C51Sch. 1 para. 1(i) amended (31.10.1994) by 1994 c. 26, s. 106(1), Sch. 4 para. 1(2); S.I. 1994/2550, art.2
2E+WTo the Queen’s Bench Division are assigned—
(a)applications for writs of habeus corpus, except applications made by a parent or guardian of a minor for such a writ concerning the custody of the minor;
(b)applications for judicial review;
F446[F447(ba)]. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
[F448(bb)all financial restrictions proceedings within the meaning of Chapter 2 of Part 6 of the Counter-Terrorism Act 2008 (see section 65 of that Act);]
[F449(bc)all proceedings—
(i)on an appeal under section 26, or an application under section 27, of the Terrorist Asset-Freezing etc. Act 2010 (appeals and reviews by the court), or
(ii)on a claim arising from any matter to which such an appeal or application relates;]
[F450(bd)all TPIM proceedings (within the meaning of the Terrorism Prevention and Investigation Measures Act 2011);]
(c)all causes and matters involving the exercise of the High Court’s Admiralty jurisdiction or its jurisdiction as a prize court; and
(d)all causes and matters entered in the commercial list.
Textual Amendments
F446Sch. 1 para. 2(ba) omitted (15.12.2011) by virtue of Terrorism Prevention and Investigation Measures Act 2011 (c. 23), s. 31(2), Sch. 7 para. 1(a) (with Sch. 8)
F447Sch. 1 para. 2(ba) inserted (11.3.2005) by Prevention of Terrorism Act 2005 (c. 2), ss. 11(5), Sch. para. 10
F448Sch. 1 para. 2(bb) inserted (27.11.2008) by Counter-Terrorism Act 2008 (c. 28), ss. 71, 100
F449Sch. 1 para. 2(bc) inserted (17.12.2010) by Terrorist Asset-Freezing etc. Act 2010 (c. 38), ss. 28(1), 55(1) (with s. 44)
F450Sch. 1 para. 2(bd) inserted (15.12.2011) by Terrorism Prevention and Investigation Measures Act 2011 (c. 23), s. 31(2), Sch. 7 para. 1(b) (with Sch. 8)
3E+WTo the Family Division are assigned—
(a)all matrimonial causes and matters (whether at first instance or on appeal);
(b)all causes and matters (whether at first instance or on appeal) relating to—
(i)legitimacy;
[F451(ii)the exercise of the inherent jurisdiction of the High Court with respect to minors, the maintenance of minors and any proceedings under the Children Act 1989, except proceedings solely for the appointment of a guardian of a minor’s estate;]
(iii)F452. . . adoption;
(iv)non-contentious or common form probate business;
(c)applications for consent to the marriage of a minor [F453or for a declaration under section 27B(5) of the Marriage Act M60 1949];
(d)proceedings on appeal under section 13 of the M61Administration of Justice Act 1960 from an order or decision made under section 63(3) of the M62Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980 to enforce an order of a magistrates’ court made in matrimonial proceedings [F454or proceedings under Part IV of the Family Law Act 1996]or with respect to the guardianship of a minor.
[F455(e)applications under Part III of the Family Law Act 1986.]
[F455(e)proceedings under the Children Act 1989]
[F456(ea)proceedings under section 79 of the Childcare Act 2006;]
[F457(eb)proceedings under section 43 of the Children and Families (Wales) Measure 2010;]
[F458(f)all proceedings under:—
(i)the [F459Part IV [F460or 4A] of the Family Law Act 1996];
(ii)the Child Abduction and Custody Act 1985
(iii)the Family Law Act 1986;
[F461(iv)section 54 of the Human Fertilisation and Embryology Act 2008;]
[F462(v)Council Regulation (EC) No 2201/2003 of 27th November 2003 concerning jurisdiction and the recognition and enforcement of judgments in matrimonial matters and matters of parental responsibility, so far as that Regulation relates to jurisdiction, recognition and enforcement in parental responsibility matters;]
[F463(fa)all proceedings relating to a debit or credit under section 29(1) or 49(1) of the Welfare Reform and Pensions Act 1999;]
(g)all proceedings for the purpose of enforcing an order made in any proceedings of a type described in this paragraph.]
[F464(h)all proceedings under the Child Support Act 1991.]
[F465(i)all proceedings under sections 6 and 8 of the Gender Recognition Act 2004.]
[F466(i)all civil partnership causes and matters (whether at first instance or on appeal);
(j)applications for consent to the formation of a civil partnership by a minor or for a declaration under paragraph 7 of Schedule 1 to the Civil Partnership Act 2004;
(k)applications under section 58 of that Act (declarations relating to civil partnerships).]
Textual Amendments
F451Sch. 1 para. 3(b)(ii) substituted (14. 10. 1991) by Children Act 1989 (c. 41, SIF 20), s. 108(5)(6), Sch. 13 para. 45(3) (with Sch. 14 para. 1(1)); S.I. 1991/828, art. 3(2)
F452Words repealed by Family Law Reform Act 1987 (c. 42, SIF 49:7), s. 33(2)(4), Sch. 3 paras. 1, 6, Sch. 4
F453Words inserted by Marriage (Prohibited Degrees of Relationship) Act 1986 (c. 16, SIF 49:1), s. 5
F454Words in Sch. 1 para. 3(d) inserted (1.10.1997) by 1996 c. 27, s. 66(1), Sch. 8 Pt. III para. 51(a); S.I. 1997/1892, art. 3(1)(b)
F455Sch. 1 para. 3(e) commencing “applications under” added by Family Law Act 1986 (c. 55, SIF 49:3), s. 68(1), Sch. 1 para. 26 and Sch. 1 para. 3(e) commencing “proceedings under” added (14. 10. 1991) by Children Act 1989 (c. 41, SIF 20), ss. 92, 108(6), Sch. 11 Pt. II para. 9 (with Sch. 14 para. 1(1)); S.I. 1991/828, art. 3(2)
F456Sch. 1 para. 3(ea) inserted (6.4.2007) by Childcare Act 2006 (c. 21), ss. 103(1), 109, Sch. 2 para. 3; S.I. 2007/1019, art. 4
F457Sch. 1 para. 3(eb) inserted (1.4.2011) by Children and Families (Wales) Measure 2010 (nawm 1), s. 75(3), Sch. 1 para. 4; S.I. 2010/2582, art. 2, Sch. 1 (with Sch. 2 Sch. 3)
F458Sch. 1 para. 3(f)(g) added (14.10.1991) by S.I. 1991/1210, art. 3, Sch
F459Words in Sch. 1 para. 3(f)(i) substituted (1.10.1997) by 1996 c. 27, s. 66(1), Sch. 8 Pt. III para. 51(b); S.I. 1997/1892, art. 3(1)(b)
F460Words in Sch. 1 para. 3(f)(i) inserted (25.11.2008) by Forced Marriage (Civil Protection) Act 2007 (c. 20), ss. 3(1), 4(2)(4), Sch. 2 para. 1; S.I. 2008/2779, art. 2(c)
F461Sch. 1 para. 3(f)(iv) substituted (6.4.2010) by Human Fertilisation and Embryology Act 2008 (c. 22), s. 68(2), Sch. 6 para. 21; S.I. 2010/987, art. 2(g)
F462Sch. 1 para. 3(f)(v) inserted (1.3.2005) by The European Communities (Jurisdiction and Judgments in Matrimonial and Parental Responsibility Matters) Regulations 2005 (S.I. 2005/265), reg. 5
F463Sch. 1 para. 3(fa) inserted (1.12.2000) by 1999 c. 30, s. 84, Sch. 12 para. 1; S.I. 2000/1116, art. 2(b)(f)
F464Sch. 1 para. 3(h) inserted (5.4.1993) by S.I. 1993/622, art. 3
F465Sch. 1 para. 3(i) inserted (21.1.2005) by The High Court (Distribution of Business) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/3418), art. 3
F466Sch. 1 para. 3(i)-(k) inserted (15.4.2005 for specified purposes and otherwise prosp.) by virtue of Civil Partnership Act 2004 (c. 33), ss. 261(1), 263, Sch. 27 para. 70; S.I. 2005/1112, art. 2, Sch. 1
Modifications etc. (not altering text)
C52Sch. 1 para. 3 modified (6.4.2010) by The Human Fertilisation and Embryology (Parental Orders) Regulations 2010 (S.I. 2010/985), regs. 1(1), 5, Sch. 4
Marginal Citations
Sections 88 to 95
Textual Amendments
F467Sch. 2 substituted (21.7.2008) by Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15), ss. 50, 148, Sch. 10 para. 13(3)-(5); S.I. 2008/1653, art. 2(d) (with arts. 3, 4)
Office | Persons qualified |
---|---|
Official Solicitor | A person who has a 10 year general qualification (within the meaning of section 71 of the Courts and Legal Services Act 1990). |
Office | Persons qualified |
---|---|
Master, Queen's Bench Division | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. |
Queen's Coroner and Attorney and Master of the Crown Office and Registrar of Criminal Appeals | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 7-year basis. |
Admiralty Registrar | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. |
Master, Chancery Division | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. |
Registrar in Bankruptcy of the High Court | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. |
Taxing Master of the Senior Courts | A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. |
District judge of the principal registry of the Family Division | 1. A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. 2. A district probate registrar who either— (a) is of at least 5 years' standing, or (b) has, during so much of the 5 years immediately preceding his appointment as he has not been a district probate registrar, served as a civil servant in the principal registry or a district probate registry. 3. A civil servant who has served at least 7 years in the principal registry or a district probate registry. |
Office | Persons qualified |
---|---|
District probate registrar | 1. A person who satisfies the judicial-appointment eligibility condition on a 5-year basis. 2. A civil servant who has served at least 5 years in the principal registry of the Family Division or a district probate registry.] |
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F468Sch. 3 repealed by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
1(1)So much of any enactment as refers or relates to any former court or judge whose jurisdiction is vested in the Court of Appeal or the High Court shall be construed and have effect as if any reference to that court or judge were a reference to the Court of Appeal or the High Court, as the case may be.U.K.
(2)All Acts, charters and other instruments which refer to Westminster as the locality of any former court, being a court whose jurisdiction is vested in the Court of Appeal or the High Court, shall be construed as referring instead to the Royal Courts of Justice and other places at which the Court of Appeal or the High Court sits.
2E+WAny enactment or document referring to the Accountant-General of the Court of Chancery or Court of Exchequer shall be read as referring instead to the Accountant General of the [F469Senior Courts].
Textual Amendments
F469Words in Sch. 4 para. 2 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
3E+WIn any enactment or document passed or made before 1st October 1966—
(a)any reference to the Court of Criminal Appeal (except where it occurs in a reference to the registrar of that court) shall, subject to rules of court made in pursuance of section 53(1), be read as a reference to the criminal division of the Court of Appeal;
(b)any reference to the registrar of the Court of Criminal Appeal shall be read as a reference to the registrar of criminal appeals; and
(c)any reference to the Court of Appeal shall, subject to rules of court made in pursuance of section 53(1), be read as a reference to the civil division of the Court of Appeal.
4E+WIn any enactment or document passed or made before the commencement of this Act any reference to the principal registrar of the Family Division shall be read as a reference to the Senior Registrar of that Division.
Section 152(1).
Editorial Information
X6The text of s. 152(1)(4)(5), Sch. 5 and Sch. 7 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutes in Force and, except as specified, does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
In section 2(1), for “156A of the M63Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 109 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
Marginal Citations
F470. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F470Entry repealed by Housing (Consequential Provisions) Act 1985 (c. 71, SIF 61), ss. 3(1), 5(2), Sch. Pt I. Sch. 4
F471. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F471Entry repealed by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 75(1), Sch. 9 Pt. I and also expressed to be repealed by Insolvency Act 1985 (c. 65, SIF 66), s. 235(2)(3), Sch. 10 Pt. III
In section 47A(7) (notices to principal registrar of Family Division)—
for “principal registrar” substitute “ Senior Registrar ”; and
for the words from “made under” onwards substitute “ of court made under section 127 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
In section 3(1), “for M64Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
Marginal Citations
1E+WF472. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F472Sch. 5: para. 1 of entry repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(aa)(bb)
F4732E+W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F473Sch. 5: para. 2 of the entry relating to the amendment of Foreign Judgments (Reciprocal Enforcement) Act 1933 repealed by Civil Jurisdiction and Judgments Act 1982 (c.27, SIF 45:3), s. 54, Sch. 14
Section 2(2)(b) shall continue to have effect with the amendments made by the M65Criminal Appeal Act 1964 and the M66Criminal Appeal Act 1966, that is with the insertion after “preferred” of “by the direction of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal”.
F474. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F474Entry repealed by Finance Act 1987 (c. 16, SIF 99:6), s. 72(7), Sch. 16 Pt. XI
F475. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F475Entry repealed by Administration of Justice Act 1982 (c. 53, SIF 37), s. 75(1) Sch. 9 Pt. I and also expressed to be repealed by Companies Consolidation (Consequential Provisions) Act 1985 (c. 9, SIF 27), s. 29, Sch. 1
F476. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F476Sch. 5: entry repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(aa)(bb)
In section 1(4)—
for “(1) of section one hundred and sixty of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ (2) of section 114 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”;
after “must” insert “ in general ”; and
for “(2) of the said section one hundred and sixty” substitute “ (4) of that section ”.
In section 38(3), for “ninety-nine of the M67Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 84 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
Marginal Citations
[F477Section 110(1) shall continue to have effect with the amendments made by Part II of Schedule I to the M68Criminal Appeal Act 1966, that is—
with the substitution of “is under all the circumstances of the case unsafe or unsatisfactory” for the words from “ is unreasonable ” to “ evidence ”;
with the substitution of “there was a material irregularity in the course of the trial” for “ on any ground there was a miscarriage of justice ”; and
with the addition at the end of the following proviso—
“Provided that the confirming officer may, notwithstanding that he is of opinion that he would apart from this proviso withhold confirmation of the finding, confirm the finding if he considers that no miscarriage of justice has actually occurred.”.]
Textual Amendments
F477Entry in Sch. 5 relating to the Army Act 1955 repealed (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 35, s. 29(2), Sch.3; S.I. 1995/3061, art. 3(i)(vi) (with savings in art. 4(b))
Marginal Citations
[F478Section 110(1) shall continue to have effect with the amendments made by Part II of Schedule 1 to the Criminal Appeal Act 1966, that is with the same amendments as are specified in the entry in this Schedule relating to the M69Army Act 1955.]
Textual Amendments
F478Entry in Sch. 5 relating to the Air Force Act 1955 repealed (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 35, s. 29(2), Sch.3 S.I. 1995/3061, art.3(i)(vi)
Marginal Citations
F479. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F479Entry repealed by Medical Act 1983 (c. 54, SIF 83:1), s. 36(2)(3), Sch. 7 Pt. I
F480. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F480Entry repealed by Dentists Act 1983 (c. 38, SIF 83:1), s. 33(2), Sch. 3
F481. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F481Entry repealed by Opticians Act 1989 (c. 44, SIF 83:1), s. 37, Sch. 2
F482. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F482Entry repealed by Mental Health (Amendment) Act 1982 (c. 51, SIF 85), s. 65(2), Sch. 4 Pt. I
In paragraph 2(2) of Schedule 2, for “forty-nine of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 36 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
F483. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F483Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
F484. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F484Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
F485 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F485Schedule 5: Entry relating to Public Health Act 1961 repealed (1. 12. 1991) by Water Consolidation (Consequential Provisions) Act 1991 c. 60, ss. 3(1), 4(2), Sch. 3 Pt.I
F486. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F486Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
1E+WF487. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F487Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
2E+WF488. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F488Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
3E+WF489. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F489Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
In paragraph 4(2) of Schedule 2, for “49 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 36 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
In sections 1(6) and 2(2), for “99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 84 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
F490. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F490Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
1E+WIn section 33 (right of appeal to House of Lords from decision of criminal division of Court of Appeal), after subsection (2) insert—
“(3)Except as provided by this Part of this Act and section 13 of the Administration of Justice Act 1960 (appeal in cases of contempt of court), no appeal shall lie from any decision of the criminal division of the Court of Appeal.”.
2E+WFor subsection (1) of, and the side-note to, section 45 (jurisdiction of Court of Appeal, and construction of certain references in Parts I and II) substitute—
(1)References in Parts I and 11 of this Act to the Court of Appeal shall be construed as references to the criminal division of the Court.”
3E+WIn Schedule 2 (provisions applicable on order for retrial), paragraph 2(4) shall have effect, and be deemed always to have had effect, as if for “Section 17(2) of the M70Criminal Justice Administration Act 1962” there were substituted “ Section 67 of the M71Criminal Justice Act 1967 ”.
Textual Amendments
F491Sch. 5 entry repealed (1.4.2010) by Health and Social Care Act 2008 (c. 14), s. 170(3)(4), Sch. 15 Pt. 2; S.I. 2010/708, art. 4(2)(d)
Marginal Citations
1U.K.In section 1(1)(h)(i) (power to apply to hovercraft etc. enactments about ships etc.), for “Act)” substitute “ Act, or an enactment contained in sections 20 to 24 of the Supreme Court Act 1981) ”.
2(1)Section 2 (Admiralty jurisdiction etc.) shall be amended as follows.U.K.
(2)In subsection (1)—
(a)for “Parts I and V” substitute “ Part V ”; and
(b)for the words from “the reference in section 4(1)” to “the said Schedule 1)” substitute “ the reference in paragraph 4(1) of the said Part I and the second reference in paragraph 8(1) of that Part) ”.
(3)After subsection (3) insert—
“(3A)Subsection (3) of this section shall have effect as if the reference to the enactments mentioned in subsection (1) as extended by that subsection included a reference to sections 20 to 24 of the Supreme Court Act 1981.”.
F492. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F492Entry repealed by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
F493. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F493Entry repealed by Mental Health (Amendment) Act 1982 (c. 51, SIF 85), s. 65(2), Sch. 4 Pt. I
1(1)Section 11 (sealing of Commonwealth and Colonial grants) shall be amended as follows.E+W
(2)In subsection (3)—
(a)for “167 of the M73Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 120 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”; and
(b)omit “and orders”.
(3)In subsection (8), for the definition of “probate rules and orders” substitute—
““probate rules” means rules of court made under section 127 of the Supreme Court Act 1981.”.
Marginal Citations
2E+WIn section 14(3), for “8” substitute “ 9 ”.
In paragraph 5(2) of Schedule 3, for “49 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 36 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
F494. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F494Entry in Sch. 5 relating to Merchant Shipping (Oil Pollution) Act 1971 repealed (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(1), 316(2), Sch.12 (with s. 312(1), Sch. 14 para. 1)
F495. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F495Entry in Sch. 5 repealed (1. 10. 1992) by Tribunals and Inquiries Act 1992 (c. 53), ss. 18(2), 19(2), Sch. 4 Pt.I.
F496. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F496Entry repealed by Planning (Consequential Provisions) Act 1990 (c. 11, SIF 123:1, 2), s. 3, Sch. 1 Pt. I, Sch. 3
In section 6(4) (effect of non-registration of writs and orders registrable under section 6), for “section 36(3) of the Administration of Justice Act 1956” substitute “ section 37(5) of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
F497. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F497Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
F498. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F498Entry repealed by Water Act 1989 (c. 15, SIF 130), ss. 58(7), 101(1), 141(6), 160(1)(2)(4), 163, 189(4)–(10), 190, 193, Sch. 26 paras. 3(1)(2), 17, 40(4), 41(1), 57(6), 58, Sch. 27 Pt. I
F499. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F499Entry in Sch. 5 relating to Merchant Shipping Act 1974 (c. 43) repealed (1.1.1996) by 1995 c. 21, ss. 314(1), 316(2), Sch.12 (with s. 312(1), Sch. 14 para. 1)
1E+WIn section 19(2), for “120 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 94 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
2E+WAfter section 81 insert—
(1)The Lord Chancellor may, with the concurrence of the Lord Chief Justice and the Master of the Rolls, by order prescribe the fees to be charged by—
(a)commissioners for oaths; and
(b)solicitors exercising the powers of commissioners for oaths by virtue of section 81,
in respect of the administration of an oath or the taking of an affidavit.
(2)Any order under this section shall be made by statutory instrument, which shall be laid before Parliament after being made.
(3)In this section “affidavit” has the same meaning as in the Commissioners for Oaths Act 1889.”.
In Part III of Schedule 1, in the entry beginning “Officer of the Supreme Court”, for the words from “within” onwards substitute “ being the holder of any office listed in any Part of Schedule 2 to the Supreme Court Act 1981 or a district registrar, or assistant district registrar, of the High Court ”.
Part 111 of Schedule 1 shall have effect with the same amendment as is specified in the entry in this Schedule relating to the M74House of Commons Disqualification Act 1975.
Marginal Citations
1U.K.In section 4 (extension of powers of High Court etc. in relation to obtaining evidence for proceedings in that court) for the words from the beginning to “shall” substitute “ The M75Attendance of Witnesses Act 1854 (which enables the Court of Session to order the issue of a warrant of citation in special form, enforceable throughout the United Kingdom, for the attendance of a witness at a trial) shall ”.
Marginal Citations
2E+WF500. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F500Sch. 5: para. 2 of entry repealed (1.4.2005) by Courts Act 2003 (c. 39), ss. 109(3), 110, Sch. 10; S.I. 2005/910, art. 3(aa)(bb)
In paragraph 4(2) of Schedule 3, for “49 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 36 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
In section 4—
in subsection (4), for “99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 84 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”; and
in subsection (5), for “99” and “1925” substitute respectively “ 84 ” and “ 1981 ”.
In section 19(2), for “49 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 36 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . F501
Textual Amendments
F501Entry repealed by Medical Act 1983 (c. 54, SIF 83:1), s. 36(2)(3), Sch. 7 Pt. I
F502. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F502Entry in Sch. 5 relating to the Employment Protection (Consolidation) Act 1978 repealed (22.8.1996) by 1996 c. 17, ss. 45, 46, Sch. 3 Pt.I (with s. 38)
F503. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F503Sch. 5: entry repealed (22.7.2004) by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 2004 (c. 14), s. 1(1), {Sch. 1 Pt. 1 Group 4}
In section 5(2), for “99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” substitute “ 84 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 ”.
1E+WAfter section 43 insert—
(1)Where a person in custody in pursuance of a warrant issued by the Crown Court with a view to his appearance before the Crown Court is brought before a magistrates’ court in pursuance of section 81(5) of the Supreme Court Act 1981—
(a)the magistrates’ court shall commit him in custody or release him on bail until he can be brought or appear before the Crown Court at the time and place appointed by the Crown Court;
(b)if the warrant is endorsed for bail, but the person in custody is unable to satisfy the conditions endorsed, the magistrates’ court may vary those conditions, if satisfied that it is proper to do so.
(2)A magistrates’ court shall have jurisdiction under subsection (1) whether or not the offence was committed, or the arrest was made, within the court’s area.”.
2E+WIn section 87(2) for “penalty” substitute “ sum ”.
F504. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
1E+WFor subsection (2) of section 34 (county court registrars and assistant registrars) substitute—
“(2)Nothing in this Act shall apply to a part-time registrar or part-time assistant registrar within the meaning of subsection (3) of section 22 of the County Courts Act 1959 (restrictions on practice).”.
2E+WSchedule 1 (pensions, etc. of certain judicial officers) shall be amended as follows—
(a)in paragraph 1, for the list of Supreme Court officers (namely that beginning with “Master and Assistant Master of the Supreme Court, Queen’s Bench Division” and ending with “Registrar, and Assistant Registrar, of Criminal Appeals”) substitute—
“Master, Queen’s Bench Division.
Queen’s coroner and attorney and Master of the Crown Office.
Admiralty Registrar.
Master, Chancery Division.
Registrar in Bankruptcy of the High Court.
Taxing Master of the Supreme Court.
Registrar, Principal Registry of the Family Division.
Registrar of criminal appeals.
Registrar of civil appeals.
Master of the Court of Protection.”; and
(b)in paragraph 4—
(i)in sub-paragraph (1)(a), for “the prescribed number of years of” substitute “ 15 years ”, and
(ii)omit sub-paragraph (2).
Section 152(3).
F5051E+W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F505Sch. 6 paras. 1, 2(2), 3, 6 repealed by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1989 (c. 43), s. 1(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
2(1)Any person holding an office immediately before the commencement of this Act in the case of which provision for appointment is made by Part IV shall continue to hold that office as if he had been appointed under that Part (whether or not he is qualified to be so appointed).E+W
F506(2). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F506Sch. 6 paras. 1, 2(2), 3, 6 repealed by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1989 (c. 43), s. 1(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
F5073U.K.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F507Sch. 6 paras. 1, 2(2), 3, 6 repealed by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1989 (c. 43), s. 1(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
F5084E+W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F508Sch. 6 para. 4 repealed by Mental Health Act 1983 (c. 43), s. 148(3), Sch. 6
5E+WThis Act, so far as it amends or repeals any provision of Schedule 1 to the M76Judicial Pensions Act 1981, shall not have effect in relation to any person who was within paragraph 1 of that Schedule immediately before the commencement of this Act and either was then holding office or had previously retired or died.
Marginal Citations
F5096E+W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .
Textual Amendments
F509Sch. 6 paras. 1, 2(2), 3, 6 repealed by Statute Law (Repeals) Act 1989 (c. 43), s. 1(1), Sch. 1 Pt. I
7E+WIn relation to deaths occurring before 13th March 1975 (the date on which the M77Finance Act 1975 was passed)—
(a)section 109 shall not apply; and
(b)section 110 shall have effect as if at the end of paragraph (b) there were added the words “and the Inland Revenue affidavit within the meaning of Part I of the M78Finance Act 1894”.
8E+WNothing in the repeals made by this Act shall affect—
(a)any grant made before the commencement of this Act under any of the following provisions of the 1925 Act, namely section 162(1) and proviso (a) thereto and sections 164 and 165; or
(b)the continued operation of subsections (2) and (3) of section 164 of that Act in relation to any grant so made under that section.
9E+WAny appointment of a minor as executor which, immediately before the commencement of this Act, was by virtue of section 165(2) of the 1925 Act rendered ineffective for the purposes mentioned in that subsection shall continue to be ineffective for those purposes unless and until probate is granted to the person in question in accordance with probate rules.
10E+WNothing in this Act shall affect the continued operation of section 167 of the 1925 Act, as in force before 1st January 1972 (the date on which the M79Administration of Estates Act 1971 came into force), in relation to the enforcement or assignment of any administration bond given under that section before that date.
Marginal Citations
11E+WSection 121 applies whether the grant in question was made or (as the case may be) resealed before or after the commencement of this Act.
12E+WIn paragraph 3(d) of Schedule 1, the reference to an order or decision made under section 63(3) of the M80Magistrates’ Courts Act 1980 includes a reference to an order or decision made under section 54(3) of the M81Magistrates’ Courts Act 1952.
13(1)In this Schedule “the M821925 Act” means the [F510Senior Courts] of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925.E+W
(2)Nothing in this Schedule shall be taken as prejudicing the operation of the provisions of the M83Interpretation Act 1978 as respects the effect of repeals.
Textual Amendments
F510Words in Sch. 6 para. 13 substituted (1.10.2009) by Constitutional Reform Act 2005 (c. 4), ss. 59, 148, Sch. 11 para. 26(1); S.I. 2009/1604, art. 2(d)
Marginal Citations
Section 152(4)
Editorial Information
X7The text of s. 152(1)(4)(5), Sch. 5 and Sch. 7 is in the form in which it was originally enacted: it was not reproduced in Statutes in Force and, except as specified, does not reflect any amendments or repeals which may have been made prior to 1.2.1991
Chapter | Short Title | Extent of Repeal |
---|---|---|
33 Hen. 8. c. 39. | Crown Debts Act 1541. | The whole Act. |
39 & 40 Geo. 3. c. 36. | Transfer of Stock Act 1800. | The whole Act. |
10 Geo. 4. c. 13. | Court Funds Act 1829. | The whole Act. |
3 & 4 Will. 4. c. 99. | Fines Act 1833. | Sections 26 to 28 and 30 to 32, except as regards process issued before the commencement of this Act. |
Section 33, except as regards matters to which sections 23 to 25 of the Act relate. | ||
7 & 8 Vict. c. 96. | Execution Act 1844. | The whole Act, except section 67 so far as it relates to the process of the High Court. |
14 & 15 Vict. c. 99. | Evidence Act 1851. | Section 6. |
15 & 16 Vict. c. 76. | Common Law Procedure Act 1852. | Section 126. |
20 & 21 Vict. c. 77. | Court of Probate Act 1857. | The whole Act. |
21 & 22 Vict. c. 27. | Chancery Amendment Act 1858. | The whole Act, so far as unrepealed. |
21 & 22 Vict. c. 95 | Court of Probate Act 1858. | The whole Act. |
22 & 23 Vict. c. 21. | Queen’s Remembrancer Act 1859. | Section 23. |
24 & 25 Vict. c. 10. | Admiralty Court Act 1861. | The whole Act. |
27 & 28 Vict. c. 25. | Naval Prize Act 1864. | In section 2, the definition of “the High Court of Admiralty”. |
Sections 10 to 12, 14, 15 and 45. | ||
31 & 32 Vict. c. 72. | Promissory Oaths Act 1868. | In Part II of the Schedule, the entries relating to the Lord Chief Justice and the Master of the Rolls. |
31 & 32 Vict. c. 125. | Parliamentary Elections Act 1868. | Section 11. |
33 & 34 Vict. c. 28. | Attorneys’ and Solicitors’ Act 1870. | The whole Act. |
42 & 43 Vict. c. 75. | Parliamentary Elections and Corrupt Practices Act 1879. | The whole Act, so far as unrepealed. |
46 & 47 Vict. c. 51. | Corrupt and Illegal Practices Act 1883. | Section 42. |
54 & 55 Vict. c. 53. | Supreme Court of Judicature Act 1891. | In section 5, the words from “and” onwards. |
56 & 57 Vict. c. 71. | Sale of Goods Act 1893. | Section 26. |
4 & 5 Geo. 5. c. 59. | Bankruptcy Act 1914. | In section 97, subsection (1) and, in subsection (2), the proviso. |
5 & 6 Geo. 5. c. 57. | Prize Courts Act 1915. | Section 4. |
14 & 15 Geo. 5. c. 17. | County Courts Act 1924. | The whole Act. |
15 & 16 Geo. 5. c. 23. | Administration of Estates Act 1925. | In section 55(1), in paragraph (xiii), the words from “or” onwards, and paragraphs (xvi) and (xxii). |
15 & 16 Geo. 5. c. 49. | Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925. | The whole Act. |
18 & 19 Geo. 5. c. 26. | Administration of Justice Act 1928. | The whole Act. |
22 & 23 Geo. 5. c. 55. | Administration of Justice Act 1932. | The whole Act. |
23 & 24 Geo. 5. c. 36. | Administration of Justice (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1933. | Section 6. |
25 & 26 Geo. 5. c. 2. | Supreme Court of Judicature (Amendment) Act 1935. | The whole Act. |
1 & 2 Geo. 6. c. 28. | Evidence Act 1938. | Section 5. |
1 & 2 Geo. 6. c. 63. | Administration of Justice (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1938. | The whole Act. |
1 & 2 Geo. 6. c. 67. | Supreme Court of Judicature (Amendment) Act 1938. | The whole Act. |
3 & 4 Geo. 6. c. 28. | Evidence and Powers of Attorney Act 1940. | Section 4(1)(a). |
7 & 8 Geo. 6. c. 9. | Supreme Court of Judicature (Amendment) Act 1944. | The whole Act. |
10 & 11 Geo. 6. c. 44. | Crown Proceedings Act 1947. | In section 20(2), the proviso. |
In section 27(1), paragraph (c) of the proviso and the word “or” preceding it. | ||
11 & 12 Geo. 6. c. 38. | Companies Act 1948. | In section 219, in subsection (1), the words from “at any time” to “or may”, and subsection (2). |
11 & 12 Geo. 6. c. 58. | Criminal Justice Act 1948. | In section 37(4), the words from “and the powers” onwards. |
12, 13, & Geo. 6. c. 100. | Law Reform (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1949. | Section 9. |
2 & 3 Eliz. 2. c. 38. | Supreme Court Officers (Pensions) Act 1954. | The whole Act. |
4 & 5 Eliz. 2. c. 46. | Administration of Justice Act 1956. | Parts I and II. |
Sections 34 and 36. | ||
Section 38. | ||
Sections 42 to 44. | ||
Section 54. | ||
Section 56. | ||
6 & 7 Eliz. 2. c. 51. | Public Records Act 1958. | Section 8(2). |
F511. . . | F511. . . | F511. . . |
7 & 8 Eliz. 2. c. 39. | Supreme Court of Judicature (Amendment) Act 1959. | The whole Act. |
7 & 8 Eliz. 2. c. 72. | Mental Health Act 1959. | In section 111(2), the words from “and onwards”. |
Section 115(2). | ||
In Schedule 7, in Part I, the entry relating to the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925. | ||
8 & 9 Eliz. 2. c. 9. | Judicial Pensions Act 1959. | In Schedule 1, in column 1, the words from “Lord Chief Justice, Master of the Rolls” to “Puisne Judge of the High Court of Justice”. |
8 & 9 Eliz. 2. c. 65. | Administration of Justice Act 1960. | In section 13(6), the words from “and for” onwards. |
9 & 10 Eliz. 2. c. 3. | Administration of Justice (Judges and Pensions) Act 1960. | The whole Act. |
9 & 10 Eliz. 2. c. 39. | Criminal Justice Act 1961. | In Schedule 4, the entry relating to the Mental Health Act 1959. |
10 & 11 Eliz. 2. c. 27. | Recorded Delivery Service Act 1962. | In the Schedule, paragraph 4. |
1964 c. 43. | Criminal Appeal Act 1964. | The whole Act. |
1965 c. 2. | Administration of Justice Act 1965. | Section 15(3). |
Section 22. | ||
Section 24. | ||
Section 26. | ||
In Schedule 1, the entry relating to the Court Funds Act 1829. | ||
1966 c. 31. | Criminal Appeal Act 1966. | The whole Act. |
1967 c. 28. | Superannuation (Miscellaneous Provisions) Act 1967. | In section 3(4), the words “Lord Chancellor’s Medical Visitor”. |
1967 c. 56. | Matrimonial Causes Act 1967. | Section 6. |
1968 c. 5. | Administration of Justice Act 1968. | Section 1(1)(b). |
1968 c. 19. | Criminal Appeal Act 1968. | In section 11(4)(b), the words “of Court of Appeal”. |
Section 46. | ||
Section 51(3). | ||
In Schedule 5, in Part I, the amendments of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925, of the Mental Health Act 1959 and of the Criminal Appeal Act 1966 and, in the amendment of the Administration of Justice Act 1960, the words “and for the purposes of the said Part I”. | ||
1968 c. 20. | Courts-Martial (Appeals) Act 1968. | In section 2(1)(a), the words “of the Queen’s Bench Division” and the words from “after” to “Rolls”. |
In section 3(a), the words “of the Queen’s Bench Division”. | ||
1968 c. 59. | Hovercraft Act 1968. | Section 2(5). |
1968 c. 64. | Civil Evidence Act 1968. | In section 8(6), the words “section 99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925” and “section 101 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925”. |
1969 c. 46. | Family Law Reform Act 1969. | In Schedule 1, in Part I, the entry relating to the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925. |
1969 c. 48. | Post Office Act 1969. | In Schedule 6, the entries relating to section 27 of the Crown Proceedings Act 1947, section 38 of the Administration of Justice Act 1956 and section 143 of the County Courts Act 1959. |
1969 c. 58. | Administration of Justice Act 1969. | In section 12(2)(a), the words from “(including” to “1925)”. |
In section 20(1), the words from the beginning to “1925, and” and the word “each”. | ||
Section 21(1) to (3) and (5). | ||
Section 23. | ||
Sections 25, 26 and 27(1). | ||
In section 34(3), the words from the beginning to “1947, and” in their application to section 20 as regards rules of court under section 99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925. | ||
1970 c. 17. | Proceedings Against Estates Act 1970. | Section 2. |
1970 c. 31. | Administration of Justice Act 1970. | In section 1— |
(a) subsections (1) to (5), (7) and (8), and | ||
(b) in subsection (6)(a), the words from “that is” to “other”. | ||
Section 2(1) to (4). | ||
Section 3. | ||
Sections 5 and 6. | ||
Section 9. | ||
Sections 31 to 33 so far as they relate to the High Court and county courts in England and Wales. | ||
Section 34(1). | ||
Section 35 so far as it relates to the High Court and county courts in England and Wales. | ||
Section 37(3). | ||
Section 45(3). | ||
Schedule 1. | ||
In Schedule 2, paragraphs 6 to 15, 18, 20 and 22, and in paragraph 23, the words “and section 63 thereof (transfer of probate proceedings from High Court to county court),” and “, in each place where they occur,”. | ||
1971 c. 3. | Guardianship of Minors Act 1971. | In Schedule 1, in the entry relating to the Administration of Justice Act 1970, the amendments of Schedule 1 to that Act. |
1971 c. 23. | Courts Act 1971. | Parts I and II. |
Section 23. | ||
Sections 25 and 26. | ||
Section 50. | ||
In section 57, in subsection (1), the definition of “the Judicature Act 1925”, and subsection (3)(a). | ||
Schedule 1. | ||
In Schedule 8, paragraphs 18, 35(1), 40(3), 44, 46, and 57(2). | ||
1971 c. 25. | Administration of Estates Act 1971. | Section 8. |
In section 11(3), the words “and orders”. | ||
In section 12, subsection (4)(a) and, in subsection (5), the words from “under section” to “or”. | ||
1971 c. 27. | Powers of Attorney Act 1971. | Section 2. |
In section 11(3), the words from “and” onwards. | ||
1972 c. 11. | Superannuation Act 1972. | In Schedule 6, paragraphs 6, 8 and 34. |
1972 c. 30. | Civil Evidence Act 1972. | In section 2(8), the words “section 99 of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) ACt 1925” and “section 101 of the said Act of 1925”. |
1973 c. 14. | Costs in Criminal Cases Act 1973. | In Schedule 1, paragraph 7. |
1973 c. 15. | Administration of Justice Act 1973. | Section 9(1)(b). |
In section 12, in subsection (1), the words “as judge of the Supreme Court in England and Wales”, and subsection (3). | ||
Section 15. | ||
In section 16— | ||
(a) subsection (1), | ||
(b) in subsections (3) to (6), the words “deputy district registrar or”, wherever occurring, and | ||
(c)subsection (7). | ||
Section 19(2). | ||
In Schedule 2, paragraphs (a) and (b) of Part II. | ||
1973 c. 18. | Matrimonial Causes Act 1973. | In Schedule 2, paragraphs 1, 6(3) and 10(1). |
1973 c. 29. | Guardianship Act 1973. | Section 9(2)(c). |
1974 c. 37. | Health and Safety at Work etc. Act 1974. | In section 69(6), the words from the beginning to “but”. |
1974 c. 47. | Solicitors Act 1974. | In section 50(1), the words from “but” onwards. |
In Schedule 3, paragraph 2. | ||
1975 c. 7. | Finance Act 1975. | In Schedule 4, in paragraph 38, sub-paragraph (1) and, so far as it relates to section 156A of the Supreme Court of Judicature (Consolidation) Act 1925, sub-paragraph (4). |
1975 c. 14. | Social Security Act 1975. | Section 94(6). |
1975 c. 72. | Children Act 1975. | In Schedule 3, paragraph 73(1). |
1976 c. 36. | Adoption Act 1976. | In Schedule 3, paragraph 14. |
1976 c. 63. | Bail Act 1976. | In Schedule 2, paragraphs 32 and 48. |
1977 c. 37. | Patents Act 1977. | Section 96. |
In section 97(2), the words from “and” onwards. | ||
In Schedule 2, in paragraph 1(2), the reference to section 96. | ||
1977 c. 38. | Administration of Justice Act 1977. | Sections 9 and 10. |
In section 22, the words from “section 99” to “1925 and”. | ||
Section 27. | ||
1978 c. 22. | Domestic Proceedings and Magistrates’ Courts Act 1978. | In Schedule 2, paragraph 25. |
1979 c. 53. | Charging Orders Act 1979. | Section 7(2), so far as it repeals section 35 or amends section 36 of the Administration of Justice Act 1956. |
1980 c. 51. | Housing Act 1980. | In Schedule 25, paragraph 10. |
1980 c. 58. | Limitation Act 1980. | Section 35(9). |
1981 c. 20. | Judicial Pensions Act 1981. | In Schedule 1, paragraph 4(2). |
In Schedule 3, paragraph 1. | ||
1981 c. 49. | Contempt of Court Act 1981. | In section 16(2), paragraph (c) and the word “and” preceding it. |
Textual Amendments
F511Entry repealed by County Courts Act 1984 (c. 28, SIF 34), s. 148(3), Sch. 4
The Whole Act you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.
Would you like to continue?
The Whole Act you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download.
Would you like to continue?
Y Ddeddf Gyfan you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.
Would you like to continue?
Y Diweddaraf sydd Ar Gael (diwygiedig):Y fersiwn ddiweddaraf sydd ar gael o’r ddeddfwriaeth yn cynnwys newidiadau a wnaed gan ddeddfwriaeth ddilynol ac wedi eu gweithredu gan ein tîm golygyddol. Gellir gweld y newidiadau nad ydym wedi eu gweithredu i’r testun eto yn yr ardal ‘Newidiadau i Ddeddfwriaeth’.
Gwreiddiol (Fel y’i Deddfwyd neu y’i Gwnaed): Mae'r wreiddiol fersiwn y ddeddfwriaeth fel ag yr oedd pan gafodd ei deddfu neu eu gwneud. Ni wnaed unrhyw newidiadau i’r testun.
Pwynt Penodol mewn Amser: This becomes available after navigating to view revised legislation as it stood at a certain point in time via Advanced Features > Show Timeline of Changes or via a point in time advanced search.
Rhychwant ddaearyddol: Indicates the geographical area that this provision applies to. For further information see ‘Frequently Asked Questions’.
Dangos Llinell Amser Newidiadau: See how this legislation has or could change over time. Turning this feature on will show extra navigation options to go to these specific points in time. Return to the latest available version by using the controls above in the What Version box.
Gallwch wneud defnydd o ddogfennau atodol hanfodol a gwybodaeth ar gyfer yr eitem ddeddfwriaeth o’r tab hwn. Yn ddibynnol ar yr eitem ddeddfwriaeth sydd i’w gweld, gallai hyn gynnwys:
This timeline shows the different points in time where a change occurred. The dates will coincide with the earliest date on which the change (e.g an insertion, a repeal or a substitution) that was applied came into force. The first date in the timeline will usually be the earliest date when the provision came into force. In some cases the first date is 01/02/1991 (or for Northern Ireland legislation 01/01/2006). This date is our basedate. No versions before this date are available. For further information see the Editorial Practice Guide and Glossary under Help.
Defnyddiwch y ddewislen hon i agor dogfennau hanfodol sy’n cyd-fynd â’r ddeddfwriaeth a gwybodaeth am yr eitem hon o ddeddfwriaeth. Gan ddibynnu ar yr eitem o ddeddfwriaeth sy’n cael ei gweld gall hyn gynnwys:
liciwch ‘Gweld Mwy’ neu ddewis ‘Rhagor o Adnoddau’ am wybodaeth ychwanegol gan gynnwys